POPE, ANTI
V O L
U M E I
MAY 30, 1972 - My children, never cease your prayers for
Our Vicar, who is in constant danger. Should he be removed from
among you, you will receive a man of dark secrets. Beware of one
who will come in sheep's garments. You must recognize the ways
of satan. He will come and reach you with cunning and deception.
He will set man up as one to glorify, as an idol to worship. This
offends My Son! (vol I page 52)
AUGUST 5, 1972 - The Holy Father will soon undergo a great
trial. You will all gather around him and support him on his cross!
You will not set up the machinery for the entrance of satan's
agent onto the seat of Peter (an anti-pope), for when you do,
you have reached the beginning of the end! (vol I page 59)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1972 - Those in My Son's House now receive
final warning that they will not remove Our Vicar from the holy
House of God, for to do so will set in motion the advent of the
anti-pope into your house! You will not defile My Son in this
manner! (vol I page 63)
OCTOBER 6, 1972 - We are pleased with the numbers who are
making atonement to the Father for the ransom of your vicar. The
evil surrounds your vicar. The plan is to remove him from among
you! When he is removed you will receive the man of dark secrets
upon the seat of Peter! Woe to evil man who refuses to repent
of his ways! ...............You will all recognize the signs
of him who seeks to destroy, he will have on his coat of arms
the Half Moon Sickle. (vol I page 68)
NOVEMBER 1, 1972 - Doctors of the House of God. (over the
men's heads names appeared, St. Thomas Aquinas. Saint Robert Bellarmine...and
the other man is faceless, but there is a large question mark
over his head.) Jesus then said: This is the man of many faces
who walks now in the Holy House of God, only you hold the decision
to his fate!....................Our Lady turned and motioned to
this man who has no face, saying: He is being developed to enter
upon the Seat of Peter. All trials coming from the abyss can enter
into this man of perdition! A constant vigilance of prayer must
now be kept throughout your earth! The time for your Vicar has
been extended but only for a short time. When he is removed from
the seat of Peter the man of dark secrets is waiting! (vol I page
69)
MARCH 18, 1973 - There is now in the world a satanic grouping
of one-world planners. They will eliminate slowly in their plan
the Church of Jesus. This will be accomplished in great haste,
should the Seat of Peter be abandoned at this time. (vol I page
86)
MAY 30, 1973 - You will stand behind your Vicar. The agents
of hell surround him. They will not remove him from the Seat of
Peter. A greater punishment falls upon man should he be removed
from the Seat of Peter! It is the plan of Lucifer to sit his agent
upon the Seat. I have warned you many times that your ways have
led you into great destruction. (vol I page 104)
JULY 1, 1973 - My child, We must act in great haste. You
must warn your Vicar; he must not leave Rome. The seat of Peter
must not be vacated, for the one of dark secrets will enter upon
it. There is a plan for the removal of your Vicar. He must not
leave Rome....Demon four, demon five to enter Rome. (vol I page
113)
AUGUST 14, 1973 - You will not turn your backs upon the
houses of God. My Son has set His example among you. My Son, with
Simon Peter, gave you the way. You will follow the Vicar of Christ.
On your earth you will not remove him from the Seat of Peter and
place one who has been planned from hell. Watch and pray. (vol
I page 122)
MARCH 18, 1974 - Many prayers are needed for the recovery
of the representatives in My Son's House. Many examples are poor.
Without the number of prayers needed to balance the scales, and
acts of reparation from the children of earth, there will be placed
upon the Seat of Peter one who will put and place souls in the
House of God into deep darkness. Satan has poisoned many minds,
My child. Those who have the power to save, are now using this
power to destroy. (vol I page 170)
Discipline, rigid discipline must be restored. The Founding Fathers
gave you the example and the knowledge, but you want change. The
Father expects no change. Truth is truth. It is only satan who
wishes to destroy the truth in change. The work has always withstood
the test of time, but one will be entered into the House of God,
and woe to man when he places him upon the seat of Peter, for
then the great day of Lord shall be at hand. (vol I page 174)
AUGUST 21, 1974 - Control, you must know, My child, and
tell the world, that satan has control now of many major positions
in the House of God, in the Eternal City of Rome. Traitors surround
your Vicar. His sufferings are great...........Already they have
chosen his successor. But pray, My children, pray much that he
not be removed for woe to the world! The crucifixion of the Mystical
Body of Christ will come to mankind!...........Veronica: Now
Michael is stepping back and he's now pointing with his spear.
He has a spear in his right hand. He's pointing with his spear
now and he's pointing to a Cardinal and he's now writing above
his head; "W"...........Now he's going over; I should
be able to see him, he's standing right in front of him and he's
pointing to the next Cardinal and he's writing above his head;
"A"..........And he's then going to the next one, he's
sitting way over at the end though, and he's writing above his
head: "S".
Now he's coming forward and he's pointing his spear with disdain
at, at "V:. A big "V" now is appearing on the head
of, I guess he's a Bishop, or an a, a, he's got a biretta-like,
one of those little round hats. It's sort of a purplish color
and above his head is written the letter "V"........Now
Michael is bending forward.........Michael: They are the initials,
my child. You will pray for them and ask many children to pray
that they come out of the darkness. Their souls wallow in sin.
They are blinded and they are misleading those under their rule............V
does much damage to the Holy Father by changing his correspondence.
V re-wrote his letters. V censors his mail. He did not, my child,
receive the medals you sent to him. He did not receive your correspondence,
my child. The Holy Father shall receive his knowledge from Mary,
the Queen of Heaven and His Mother. (vol I page 248)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - My child, you do not know or understand
My warning. This group I speak of seeks to dethrone Our Vicar!
They are fast gathering a force but, My child, you must make it
known to the world that they are deluded! Clement the XV, an agent
of 666! He is not of the spirit of light! Beware his agents who
are now loosed in great numbers in your country and in your world!
They seek to bring great harm to Our Vicar! Pray for your Vicar.
He has accepted a heavy cross, My child. (vol I page 321)
DECEMBER 31, 1975 - .........Pray a constant vigilance
of prayer for your pastors. Pray for your cardinals in the Eternal
City, and most of all, My children, you must pray for your Holy
Father, Pope Paul. Without enough prayers, My children, your Holy
Father shall be removed from you, and one shall be placed upon
the Seat of Peter, one who knows dark secrets. He will not be
of your God, but an agent of hell. (vol I page 464)
APRIL 10, 1976 - You must, My child, make it known to the
world, this plan. Do not be stopped; do not give in to your persecutors,
My child. We have chosen you for your perseverance, your endurance,
and your faith. You must join with other voice-boxes of the world
in defense of your Vicar, your Holy Father upon earth, or you
will all shed tears of great sorrow when they remove him from
among you and seat upon the throne of Peter one who is an anti-pope,
a man of dark secrets. (vol I page 479)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1976 - My child, you speculate much about
the coming Warning. I have asked you many times not to speculate
on dates, but I give you one indication that the time is ripe.
When you see, when you hear, when you feel the revolution in Rome,
when you see the Holy Father fleeing, seeking a refuge in another
land, know that the time is ripe. But beg and plead that your
good Pontiff does not leave Rome, for he will allow the man of
dark secrets to capture his throne. (vol I page 533)
V O L U
M E I I
SEPTEMBER 7, 1977 - Pray for them! Pray for your bishops!
Pray for your cardinals, and pray for the Holy Father in Rome,
who is under great attack. His constitution, his physical constitution,
cannot stand much longer. My children, it will be the greatest
of trials to you when he is removed, for you will have in Rome
then a full capitulation to an antichrist pope. (vol II page 80)
JUNE 18, 1978 - My children, in the past My Church, My
people have gone through crucibles of suffering, but I say unto
you: My House, My Church upon earth is passing through a trial
far greater than any in past history. Lucifer and his agents now
are working with diligence and are most successful at this moment
in their striving to topple the seat of Peter and to place in
Rome a pope that is the anti-pope of history...................I
assure you, My children, that if you continue on your present
course, you shall receive this anti-pope. However, in the plan
and providence of the Eternal Father, this will be a plague upon
mankind, for it will take away from many a much needed grace to
survive the onslaught of antichrist in your world. You need a
strong pope, a true Holy Father in Rome..................You cannot
understand the trials the Holy Father, Pope Paul VI, has endured
in his papacy.................My Mother explained to you the plan
for the takeover of the seat of Peter by a select group. In 1975
a message of truth was given to mankind of the great length the
evil ones will go to capture the seat of Peter. There is working
throughout your world a group We have called the octopus, a web
of evil consisting of principalities, powers, all seeking to destroy
Christianity and to bring your country and all of the nations
of the world under the rule of one-world religionists. It will
be a political machine to enslave the world. (vol II page 168)
AUGUST 14, 1978 - My child and My children, I come to you
with great sadness of heart to counsel you, as your Mother, to
pray a constant vigilance of prayer now in your country and in
all the countries upon earth. I cannot at this time urge you enough,
My children, to pray and pray again, that these prayers rising
to the Eternal Father in Heaven may reverberate throughout the
world and into the hearts of those who will place upon the Seat
of Peter a new pope. And My children, unless you pray, upon the
Seat of Peter will be placed 666, the agent of hell in human form.
(vol II page 180)
AUGUST 19, 1978 - I hear, My children, voices asking in
supplication: And who shall be seated upon the Seat of Peter?
At the present time, My children, I give you this counsel: That
an anti-pope is being deliberated upon. You must pray more now,
pray for your bishops, your cardinals. The delusion and darkness
is deepening in Rome. (vol II page 183)
M E S S
A G E S
JUNE 18, 1988 (MSG) - My child, I also have to tell you:
Look up and see, and repeat what you see. Veronica: I see a large
crowd of people in Rome. No, it's not Rome, because I can't see
the.....I know the city. Looks like it may be in Russia. I'm not
familiar, Blessed Mother, with Russia or the buildings. Our Lady:
You will understand, My child, because at this very moment there
is a dissident under the number five of communism that is planning
to kill the Pope. His words We hear are, "This time we will
not fail to destroy him!"................Please, My children,
pray for your Holy Father, the Pope. You must not lose him, for
the one who comes after him will destroy if he can, he will attempt
to destroy, I should say, My child and My
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - Listen, My child, and repeat after Me: The Brown Bear of communism, of red orientation, will seek to devour the Holy Father, your Vicar the Pope, by assassination, and place on the seat of Peter a communist puppet known by all as the White Bear...............My child and My children of the world, disaster lies ahead in Rome if this happens. Will you not, in your goodness of heart, go forward and give this message to the world. Approach your clergy. Write to Rome! Beg them to listen before it is too late. You Holy Father, the Pope, is in great danger. ...
They cannot outwit the Eternal Father in Heaven. He knows their
hearts, and they will not succeed if you will act upon this and
keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout the world
for your Pope, the Holy Vicar in Rome.
OCTOBER 6, 1992 (MSG) - My child and My children, you will
continue to pray for your Vicar in Rome, Pope John Paul II. At
this very moment, there is now being held a conference in secret
to the world for his extermination, and to place upon the Seat
of Peter, the despot. .........Yes, My child, you've heard that
word before, the 'despot.' I say it for reason.
POPE, IMPOSTOR
V O L U
M E I
SEPTEMBER 27, 1975 - My child, I bring to you a sad truth,
one that must be made known to mankind. In doing this, My child,
you must proceed without fear. It must be made known to mankind.
Our dear beloved Vicar Pope Paul VI, he suffers much at the hands
of those he trusts. My child, shout it from the rooftops. He is
not able to do his mission. They have laid him low, My child.
He is ill, he is very ill. Now there is one who is ruling in his
place, an impostor, created from the minds of the agents of satan.
Plastic surgery, My child, the best of surgeons were used to create
this impostor. Shout from the rooftops, he must be exposed and
removed. Behind him, My child, there are three who have given
themselves to satan. You do not receive the truth in your country
and the world. Your Vicar is a prisoner. ............The antichrist,
the forces of evil have gathered, My children, within the Eternal
City. You must make it known to mankind that all that is coming
from Rome is coming from darkness. The light has not passed that
way. The appearance in public is not Paul VI, it is the impostor
pope. Medication of evil has dulled the brain of the true Pope,
Pope Paul VI. They send into his veins poison, to dull his reasoning
and paralyze his legs. What evil creature have you opened the
doors to the Eternal City and admitted the agents of satan? You
plan to remove the Eternal Father from your hearts and hearts
of those whom you seek to deceive. You scatter the flock. (vol
I page 416)
OCTOBER 2, 1975 - I have warned you there are three popes
now in the City of Rome. They have, I repeat, put forth an impostor
while they have laid low, Pope Paul VI, your true Father. It is
the deception of the century. My child, you will have no fear
in giving this message to the world. We, in Heaven, entrust you
with this knowledge. The deception must be exposed to mankind.
It is the only manner in which you can prevent the seat of Peter
from capitulating and falling into full control of the anti-Christ,
666 forces. (vol I page 421)
DECEMBER 6, 1975 - Recognize, My children, the signs of
your times. You will pray for your Vicar, Pope Paul VI. He is
laid low under a heavy cross, My children. Those who should support
him those whom he trusts most, are now plotting to remove him
from the seat of Peter. The impostor, My child, that I spoke of
with you, he is a professional man of the acting trade. He has
done his job well. (vol I page 449)
My child, the Message, the knowledge has been given to Rome. Now,
My children, We shall see what course of action they will take
to correct their error. (vol I page 450)
FEBRUARY 10, 1976 - Many pastors, My child, because of
the lack of prayer, have fallen into the web of satan. Pray for
them, and give an example to strengthen them. I ask you all to
remain steadfast with Our Vicar in Rome. Yes, there is an impostor;
much to comprehend by those who do not understand. Yes, there
is much to comprehend. (vol I page 472)
APRIL 10, 1976 - The impostor, My child, the actor and
imitator that I have spoken of to you is one who will pose himself
to bring news to the public peoples of the world.............The
political forces within the Eternal City are forces of darkness.
They will set much corruption in motion by using the medias of
communication and darkening them with all manner of confusion,
aberration, and lies. This impostor, who has been given the image
of the Pope, Our Vicar Paul VI, will pose and assume a role of
compromise to the world. It is the plan of the evil ones about
him, and I say that many are within his ranks in the Eternal City,
they will set in motion a plan to discredit your Vicar by placing
him in print and photographs in a compromising position to destroy
him. (vol I page 479)
JULY 24, 1976 - As I directed you before, there is an impostor,
there is one who is a double for your Holy Father. The game of
the reds and the blues are played like chess, My child. You must
watch well. (vol I page 513)
AUGUST 14, 1976 - It is common knowledge now in the city
of Rome that there is one who has been impersonating your Vicar,
an actor of great talent, one who through surgery has gained the
countenance of your Vicar. It is now common knowledge, My children,
and now there shall be a game of chess played. There will be bishop
against bishop and cardinal against cardinal, for satan has set
himself in their midst. Bishop against bishop and cardinal against
cardinal for satan has set himself in their midst. All that is
rotten shall fall. (vol I page 522)
V O L U
M E I I
MARCH 18, 1977 - You must understand, My child, the message
of some time ago. Yes, it is a fact and a truth that there is
another who impersonates him and goes about having photographs
taken. And there is a voice that comes out upon your air waves,
a very good imitation of your Holy Father. It is all the master
deception created by the evil forces that are seeking to destroy
your Faith, My child. (vol II page 27)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 - My child, you are looking into Rome
on that horrendous day when the Holy Father shall leave you. I
say 'shall' because the Message is being rejected in Rome. The
previous messages about this carnage to the Holy See and the
Holy Father has been taken with a manner of laughter. Too late
will they laugh and refer to My visitation in New York as being
absurd. My child and My children, that is satan. And as a holy
Pope once told you before he died, he knew that the smoke of satan
had entered into Rome and the Vatican. Well did he understand
My visit to him, My child. The world has never known how close
I was to your Vicar at that time, Pope Paul VI. Yes, My child,
he was removed from the earth, also, with his impostor.
POPE JOHN XXIII
DECEMBER 7, 1976 - Pope John: The rule has not been followed.
The rule has been distorted. Return the House of God to a place
of prayer. Return discipline to the House of God.........I was
laid low by the enemies of God. (vol I page 567)
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - Many because of the mistakes made
issuing forth from the good heart of John XXIII, Pope Paul VI,
man has taken the messages and the directions given at the Vatican
Council and twisted them to suit themselves, reading in the Bible
words of their own, or finding excuses for their sinning, through
the Bible.
POPE PAUL VI
V O L U
M E I
JUNE 18, 1970 - Do not disrespect Our Vicar! He is NOT
the cause of the discord of the disorder! Many of His trusted
have fallen! Desecrate not the physical presence of My Son on
earth! (The Host, the Tabernacle) Oh, thoughtless, careless child,
how long can I hold back His hand? Pray, My children, Pray! Remove
all souls from Purgatory! Physical death is but the beginning
of the spiritual life, the eternal life! I am the Mother of the
world! Come to Me for I will comfort you. (vol I page 8)
AUGUST 21, 1970 - Stand beside My Vicar. There will be
many martyrs in the conflagration. Do not abandon the Holy Father
for he is your Father on earth. Do not abandon My Son's gift to
you in Holy Church, for it is Our home on earth, your Heavenly
habitat, sheltering you from the Dark Knights (satan's henchmen),
wandering about to drag you to the bottomless pit! Find shelter
in Jesus' arms. Remain close to Him. .............Do not disrespect
My Vicar. He is not the cause of the discord, the disorder. Many
of his trusted have fallen. (vol I page 13)
DECEMBER 7, 1970 - Our Vicar is in great danger! Already
there is a plan in motion to remove him from among you. Never
cease in your prayers! I will guide the Message to thine Holy
Father, for they cannot hod back the truth! (vol I page 18)
APRIL 3, 1971 - There are many sins against the Holy Spirit.
This offends My Son very much. If you do not understand you will
go to your priest and he will explain it to you. You must pray
for My Vicar, for there will be a great sorrow. (vol I page 26)
MAY 19, 1971 - We can see and hear everything! Nothing
is hidden from Us. Nothing can be done in secret. The Eternal
Father is the Lord High God in Heaven and your Creator. As such
He can destroy you! I have told you before that everything has
been planned for your destruction and the evil is well rooted
in your country now, your country is in dire danger because it
has the facilities to promote more evil throughout the world.
Therefore the punishment will be far greater! The man of sin is
in your country, and the punishment will be far greater for the
man of sin is in My Son's House! You will glorify My Son in your
house, (Jesus), or you will not stand as a house! You will not
glorify man before God! You will not exchange the heart of God
for gold or silver. You will stand with the Holy Father and render
him no more sorrow. You who have been his disobedient children,
stop plunging the knife into his heart! He is Our Vicar. He is
your Father on earth, why do you disobey him? (vol I page 28)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1971 - Our Vicar, your Holy Father on earth,
who needs your consolation, he is much grieved, My children, by
the disobedience about him. There are many already plotting against
his life. (vol I page 35)
OCTOBER 2, 1971 - Yes, there are many in My Son's House
who have fallen. Even those can be saved with your prayers. The
ones whom your prayers do not recover, they will become members
of satan's crew, for already he (satan) has aligned them against
those who will defend My Son's House! We have asked your Holy
Father for a great sacrifice. You, in your resort to prayer will
hold a balance of the sacrifice. (vol I page 37)
OCTOBER 7, 1971 - My child, My children, the trial approaches,
your prayers are sorely needed now, for already the plan is in
motion to remove your Vicar from among you. Pray! Pray as you
have never prayed before! (vol I page 37)
I warn you now, red hat of evil intent, you will not expel My
Vicar from Rome! You who have sold your souls to Lucifer, do you
think that We do not watch? Your sins are not committed in darkness
that We cannot penetrate! You will bring the sword upon you! (vol
I page 37,38)
DECEMBER 31, 1971 - Confusion, confusion! All about Us
We see confusion and the conditioning of errors. Family prayer
must be instituted in the home. Without prayer you will walk the
road of error! Many prayers of reparation are needed for Our Vicar.
There is, My child, a plan to eliminate him. It is being developed
to remove him from Our House for one who is known as anti-Christ,
to reign, yes, this black leader is not black of color, but of
heart. He will bring much evil into My Son's House. (vol I page
41)
MARCH 24, 1972 - My children, the evil has accelerated!
I see the deep darkness in My Son's House (Church) Many Rosaries,
many prayers are needed for Our Vicar. Unless you make sacrifices
of the senses for your Vicar, he will be removed from among you!
It will be a great sacrifice for the world, for you do not know
what awaits you on the Seat of Peter! Soon there will be a violent
change, My child, on your earth. For those who have received the
grace to hear My Words, I plead with you now to see that My Words
reach those who have not come to this hallowed ground; for those
who receive in abundance, much will be expected of them. (vol
I page 44)
APRIL 1, 1972 - Continue your prayers and sacrifices for
your Vicar. The enemy has a well-founded plan to remove him from
the seat of Peter. The enemy is waiting, who will recrucify My
Son! Only you can help to hold back the darkness that is now smothering
truth within My Son's House (Church). Our Church will rise triumphant
in the final count, but how many souls must fall to satan before
that time? How many who have been given the power in My Son's
House are using this power to destroy souls. They have aligned
themselves with satan! ................Please remember Our Holy
Father in your prayers. We are 'buying' his time with us by our
prayers and sacrifices. Man cannot comprehend the ways and judgment
of God as it is not akin to man's. (vol I page 49)
MAY 10, 1972 - Veronica saw in vision two bishops standing
behind the Pope's chair. They were conversing. As Veronica watched,
the mitres (headpiece) on their heads turned into horns. Each
bishop had two horns on his head, now they looked like two devils!
The first bishop took out a knife and plunged it into the Pope's
back. Behind them, in the distance, was St. Michael dressed in
red, with gold trim. He carried, in his right hand, a long sword
which he raised over his head to strike down the two bishops turned
devil. (vol I page 52)
MAY 30, 1972 - My children, never cease your prayers for
Our Vicar, who is in constant danger. Should he be removed from
among you, you will receive a man of dark secrets. Beware of one
who will come in sheep's garments. You must recognize the ways
of satan. He will come and reach you with cunning and deception.
He will set man up as one to glorify, as an idol to worship. This
offends My Son! (vol I page 52)
JUNE 8, 1972 - Forged documents are coming out of Rome.
The enemies within Holy Church seek to place the papacy and Pope
Paul in a bad light; to place the blame on him, in an attempt
to tear down the papacy and set up an international religion and
not of Jesus Christ. Many are accepting as sheep going to the
slaughter. They neither pray nor try to patch the cracks. Many
are in need of awakening to the truth. Rank in the Church is
no guarantee of salvation. The Light is dim now; Jesus will be
recrucified by members of His own House (Church). For what? Hell
is their destination! Those in the Light cannot deny these facts.
Shall We say We have a pope in chains? Yes! He cries, 'help, help!'
He is being placed upon the cross now. Stand behind Holy Father,
Pope Paul! Jesus commands this, now! (vol I page 53)
JULY 15, 1972 - There is great darkness in My Son's House
(Church); many have sold their souls to reach the head. Your Vicar
will soon join the increasing list of martyred. (vol I page 56)
JULY 25, 1972 - You will keep now, a constant vigilance
of prayer. These prayers will ransom some time for Our Vicar who
has offered himself as sacrifice for those who have fallen in
his house (Church). ............(Veronica sees in vision in a
large room) The Pope is very sick; his head is lolling; he can't
seem to keep his eyes open. He struggles to sit up, but falls
to the left. Now he leans on the table; people pound on doors
and windows shouting, throwing rocks. The Pope gets up; he falls
to his knees next to a statue of Our Lady; he raises his right
hand above his head. Outside the door are cardinals with knives
behind their backs. By the windows, looking in, is a man; a dignitary;
dressed in black with a sort of cardinal's hat, but like a long
pill-box shaped, a tall, patriarch with knife behind his back.
Looking in another window are a group of bishops; secret sect;
approximately 15 or 16 bishops, with knives behind their backs.
Vision ended. ....... Jesus: Now you will know why you must
keep a constant vigilance of prayer, now until December continue
to tell your beads for your Vicar. (vol I page 57)
AUGUST 5, 1972 - The Holy Father will soon undergo a great
trial. You will all gather around him and support him on his cross!
You will not set up the machinery for the entrance of satan's
agent onto the seat of Peter (an anti-pope), for when you do,
you have reached the beginning of the end! (vol I page 59)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1972 - Those in My Son's House now receive
final warning that they will not remove Our Vicar from the holy
House of God, for to do so will set in motion the advent of the
anti-pope into your house! You will not defile My Son in this
manner! (vol I page 63)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1972 - Then a large church appeared. A bell
tolled a dirge. Church dignitaries passed into the church, all
in formal gown. St. Peter's Church. Off to the side of the Church
appeared three figures; horrible demons! One came forward, and
he now placed on his head a red cardinal's hat. And there stands
a man, arrogant, of dark secrets!............Prayers, prayers!
Many prayers are needed for your Vicar! My Son's House is being
subverted from within! The faces of evil are gathering! There
are many groups in secret who make plans to enter upon the
OCTOBER 6, 1972 - We are pleased with the numbers who are
making atonement to the Father for the ransom of your vicar. The
evil surrounds your vicar. The plan is to remove him from among
you! When he is removed you will receive the man of dark secrets
upon the seat of Peter! Woe to evil man who refuses to repent
of his ways! (vol I page 68)
DECEMBER 30, 1972 - You have asked Me many questions. I
have chosen to answer them for you at the proper time. The one
you wonder of, your vicar, has been forced, under duress, as his
heart has been now torn by the knowledge of those who have betrayed
him. He will accept his cross so that the church of his beloved
Jesus will not fall into greater scandal. (vol I page 73)
DECEMBER 31, 1972 - We have great understanding for the
trials of your Vicar. He will accept martyrdom and shall be accepted
with great joy into the Kingdom of the Father. Sadly, the plan
of the adversary is to place another on the seat of Peter. I send
you many warnings to prepare yourself and defend yourself against
this adversary. (vol I page 75)
FEBRUARY 1, 1973 - Jacinta: I come to tell you of the poor
Holy Father. I cried much for him, We love him. But man will destroy
him now. (vol I page 80)
FEBRUARY 10, 1973 - You will carry the banner for Our Vicar.
He has accepted his mission on earth. He will enter into the Kingdom
in glorious triumph. (vol I page 84)
APRIL 14, 1973 - Padre Pio: My spiritual children: Hear
me, for I bring you the word of truth. Demons roam in the Houses
of God. Prayer must chase them out! Atonement, prayer and sacrifice!
I speak out for an imprisoned Vicar. (vol I page 95)
MAY 30, 1973 - You will stand behind your Vicar. The agents
of hell surround him. They will not remove him from the Seat of
Peter. A greater punishment falls upon man should he be removed
from the Seat of Peter! It is the plan of Lucifer to sit his agent
upon the Seat. I have warned you many times that your ways have
led you into great destruction (vol I page 104)
JULY 1, 1973 - My child, We must act in great haste. You
must warn your Vicar; he must not leave Rome. The Seat of Peter
must not be vacated, for one of dark secrets will enter upon it.
There is a plan for the removal of your Vicar. He must not leave
Rome.....Demon four, demon five to enter Rome. (vol I page 113)
AUGUST 14, 1973 - You will not turn your backs upon the
Houses of God. My Son has set His example among you. My Son, with
Simon Peter, gave you the way. You will follow the Vicar of Christ.
On your earth you will not remove him from the Seat of Peter and
place one who has been planned from hell. Watch and pray. (vol
I page 122)
AUGUST 21, 1973 - You will write once more to the Reverend
Father and send Heaven's instructions that there be the Holy Hour,
a purgatorial hour of reparation on the First Friday of each earth-month.
This is by direction of My Son; on the First Friday of earth-month,
a Holy Hour of purgatorial reparation. (vol I page 125)
NOVEMBER 24, 1973 - Acknowledge the rightful leader of
man, pious Paul VI. There is much disobedience in the House of
God which has not gone by unnoticed by the Father. Entered upon
man and into the House of God are evil demons from the abyss.
They have set themselves to do battle with the men of God. Recognize
the signs of your times. You are now in the battle of the spirits.
(vol I page 146)
MARCH 18, 1974 - Now Our Lady is pointing forward to the
left side above Her head. Martyrdom! Our Lady points upward and
I see a figure now upon a cross. The figure has white robes on,
and on top of the cross, the upward beam, there is a tiara. Oh!
my goodness, it's the papal tiara. Now, Our Lady is coming forward.
She is placing a scarf about Her head. It's a black scarf. Now,
Our Lady has placed it over the covering. Our Lady has a white
gown on, with gold trim, and the white gown has an outer covering
that goes about Her head. It also has a gold trim on the outside,
and She is holding now the, here appeared out of nowhere three
candles and the three candles now is like a candelabra, and Our
Lady is bowing Her head as She now is walking, and Her hand now,
She is holding Her hand out with the candelabra, pointing to the
figure on the cross. The figure on the cross is Pope Paul. (vol
I page 171)
MARCH 24, 1974 - You will pray much for Our Vicar, the
Holy Father, who faces great persecution. There are men, many
agents of darkness who are close to him, the false faces of evil
about him. You will remain faithful and true to Our Vicar. Accept
not the stories, the tales of deception that the enemy sends among
you. (vol I page 181)
APRIL 6, 1974 - Veronica: Now, I see, it's growing very light. Ohh! I've never been over there, but I recognize. And now, standing with Our Lady in a very large area. It's, I'm looking at a very large church. I recognize it's St. Peter's. And Our Lady now is taking me by the hand, and She's pointing up to a building. And now we're going into the building, and I see Pope Paul. Ohh! .........
He is, he is sitting in a very awkward position in his chair.
He looks like he is sort of hanging over his chair. Now there
are two men coming in. They're dressed in purple and red sort
of they have lake a, oh round, like yomulka, round hats on their
heads. And they are going and they're, they've, they're propping
him up in the seat. He looks like he's a, half asleep or something.
Oh! He does look very sick. He looks very sick. Now they are taking
his hand, and they're putting a pen in his hand, and they are
shouting something at him. Sign it! Sign it! And now I see Pope
Paul, he's raising his head, and he is looking at them, very groggily
like there's something wrong with him, and he's leaning forward
and he's trying to read a paper on the desk, but now he fell across
the desk. And now the two men have pulled him up. They look like
Bishops or something. They have belts about their waist made of
like cords and tassels. Now they have pulled him up and set him
back on the chair, and they're taking his hand now and placing
it over the paper. And he's shaking his head. No! No! No!
Then, oh! The man on the right now has taken the paper, and he's
speaking to the other man, I don't recognize them. I never saw
them before, and he is saying: We'll wait until later. And now
they are going out, and Our Lady now is putting Her fingers to
Her lips, and we're leaving the room. And Our Lady now is saying:
My child, there is great deception in the Holy City. Pray much
for your Vicar; he is under great trial. Enemies surround him.
In one hand, My child, can you count those who can be trusted!
(vol I page 185,186)
APRIL 13, 1974 - You must warn and caution the children
of earth not to abandon the Vicar of Christ. The enemies about
him seek to set the pace for his downfall. They will bring into
print through the media of your world, your newspapers, your radios
and that agent that you have, known as television, grave error,
misquotes, misconceptions and lies. Know now that these lies were
created by satan, for satan is the father of all liars, My child.
He is the epitome of all deceit and deception. (vol I page 191)
MAY 22, 1974 - I will repeat them for you, My child. The
heart of your Vicar cries in anguish, Mother Immaculate, give
me the strength the to persevere in the days ahead. You have made
it known to me the way of the cross. I shall accept the will of
the Father. ............You recognize, My child, there is more
yellow than blue. Yes, the papacy, your Vicar is strengthened
in his knowledge. However, you must make it known to the bishops
of the world that disobedience to his command will not be tolerated
any longer by the Father in Heaven. (vol I page 198)
JUNE 8, 1974 - Yes, I tried to warn everyone of what was
going to happen to the world of the future. Our Lady said that
the little Father in Rome would suffer great persecution, but
much of this persecution would come from his very own, those that
he trusted. That is why the picture was given to you to send the
message throughout the world. (vol I page 210)
JULY 1, 1974 - My child, the scene that you have just witnessed
is in the present. Our Vicar and your Father on earth is being
crucified by those who have pledged themselves to follow him in
obedience. It saddens the heart of all in Heaven to observe the
disobedience of the children of earth to Our Vicar. These seeds
of disobedience have been sown by satan. (vol I page 225)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1974 - Man shall not use a rationalization
for sin. Your Vicar cries tears! A knife has been thrust in his
heart! For many disobey him! There are many enemies about him!
They go about their ways, doing their own will, to their own fancy.
There is no discipline in My Son's Houses! (vol I page 268)
NOVEMBER 1, 1974 - You will pray much for your Vicar, Our
beloved son, Pope Paul VI who is undergoing much trial from those
he trusts. Know that nothing is hidden from the Father. The time
will come when you shall be sifted like the wheat! The chaff will
be separated from the solid kernels. (vol I page 287)
NOVEMBER 20, 1974 - Veronica: Now, I can see the Holy
Father. He's very wan, he looks like he's suffering greatly. He's
very tired. He looks so tired. And as I watch he's brushing the
tears from his face. Now he's joining his hands and he's walking
across the room, and he's kneeling before a beautiful statue of
Our Lady. Oh! And he's holding his face. He's crying. Now, Our
Lady is coming over and She's placing Her hand, Her right hand
upon his head. I don't think he knows that Our Lady is standing
by him. She's placing, now, both of Her hands upon his head. Oh!
Now Our Lady is moving over to the center of the room. I just
feel like I'm rooted to the floor, I can't move over to the Holy
Father. I'd like to go over and touch him, to console him. But
I can't move. Now Our Lady is coming over...........Our Lady:
You see, My child, the great trial of your Holy Father. He suffers
much from the disobedience of those he trusts. His friends, his
true friends in Christ, are numbered in the few. (vol I page 292)
NOVEMBER 23, 1974 - My child, you must pray much for your
Vicar. he is undergoing great trial; he carries a heavy cross.
Many of his children are disobedient to his orders. He accepts
for the salvation of souls the cross of martyrdom. (vol I page
298)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - My child, you do not know or understand
My warning. This group I speak of seeks to dethrone Our Vicar!
They are fast gathering a force but, My child, you must make it
known to the world that they are deluded! Clement the XV, an agent
of 666! He is not of the spirit of light! Beware his agents who
are now loosed in great numbers in your country and in your world!
They seek to bring great harm to Our Vicar! Pray for your Vicar.
He has accepted a heavy cross, My child. (vol I page 321)
Your Vicar is in great difficulty and trial. Pray for him, My
children. Pray that he retains a great sense of duty and perseverance.
Your prayers will be his strength. (vol I page 322)
MAY 28, 1975 - My child, it is true. There is a conspiracy
of evil to unseat your Holy Father, Our Vicar.........You must
pray much for him for when he is removed, one will take the seat
of Peter to destroy Our Houses throughout the world, churches,
My child..(vol I page 371)
JUNE 5, 1975 - The abominations taking place in My Houses
throughout the world are being not condoned by your Holy Father,
Pope Paul. The arrogance of mankind in the clergy brought about
many offenses in the Divine Service, offenses to the Eternal Father.
(vol I page 374)
There is a plan afoot, My child, and in print to destroy confidence
in the Holy Father, Pope Paul VI. It is the plan of the enemy
to remove him from the Seat of Peter. .......You must pray much
for him. All of his writings are being monitored, My child. There
are many enemies in his office. They neither seek the salvation
of souls, nor the advancement in truth of the Church, My child.
They are bringing great delusion to mankind and seeking to send
many out of the Houses of God throughout the world. (vol I page
375)
You will find in your country a great split in My Houses! Watch
and pray much for you will divide among yourselves but you must
remain loyal to Rome and your Holy Father, Our Vicar, upon earth,
Pope Paul VI. The agents of hell set around him shall seek to
remove him. And you will find upon the seat of Peter, one who
is a puppet of satan! (vol I page 377)
Our Vicar, your Holy Father is suffering, My child. Many about
him have sold their souls to get to the head, caring more for
the pleasures and reaping the treasures of the world of man than
finding the treasures of the spirit of God. No man can bargain
between the Eternal Kingdom and satan the ruler of darkness and
lies! Awaken My clergy from your slumber; many are being misled.
(vol I page 379)
JULY 15, 1975 - You will pray as a nation, as an individual,
as a family, as a human being, for your Holy Father, Pope Paul
VI. He is now carrying his Cross with fortitude. There are in
the Holy City of Rome two red fishes. Remove them! (vol I page
383)
JULY 25, 1975 - You must remain united with your Holy Father
in Rome. Your country, America, the United States, will soon face
a splitting up in their Faith. This will accomplish nothing, My
children; for: United you will stand and divided you will fall.
(vol I page 389)
AUGUST 5, 1975 - The Eternal City is falling into deep
darkness of spirit. The candles are lighted, the battle will rage.
Your Vicar, will carry his cross, to the end. (vol I page 395)
SEPTEMBER 27, 1975 - I must, My child, make it known at
this time that you must go back in the immediate years and bring
the knowledge to mankind that these changes, the changes that
have given bad fruits have not been given to you through the Holy
Spirit and through your Vicar Pope Paul VI. It is the web of
satan reaching out. Many are now, My child, puppets; the strings
are being pulled by Benellie, Villot and Casaroli and their
followers. (vol I page 417)
OCTOBER 2, 1975 - I have warned you that there are three
popes now in the City of Rome. They have, I repeat, put forth
an impostor while they have laid low, Pope Paul VI, your true
Father. It is the deception of the century. My child, you will
have no fear in giving this message to the world. We, in Heaven,
entrust you with this knowledge. The deception must be exposed
to mankind. It is the only matter in which you can prevent the
seat of Peter from capitulating and falling into full control
of the anti-Christ, 666 forces. (vol I page 421)
DECEMBER 6, 1975 - Human life is of no value to the unbeliever.
The unbeliever, My children, does not know of the life beyond
the veil. Therefore, he is running wildly throughout his world,
gathering all manner of worldly riches, for his kingdom is upon
earth with satan and his future is with satan. (vol I page 449)
SEPTEMBER 6, 1975 - Yes, My child, the tears are falling
from Heaven. We see a plot against Our beloved Vicar. We see the
enemy within planning to remove him. Already, My child, his hands
are tied. You must pray a constant vigilance of prayer now, My
children, for unless you are directed by prayer to the Eternal
Father, your chances of escaping the darkness is slight. The "time
of times" is here, My children. The Day of the Return approaching.
The abyss is open; the fight for souls continues, a battle far
greater than any that mankind has ever seen or will see. (vol
I page 407)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1975 - My child, you must pray much for your
great Pastor, in Rome, the Holy Father, your Vicar, Pope Paul
VI. He suffers much at the hands of his enemies. My child, he
is but a prisoner in the Eternal City. (vol I page 413)
SEPTEMBER 27, 1975 - My child, I bring to you a sad truth,
one that must be made known to mankind. In doing this, My child,
you must proceed without fear. It must be made known to mankind.
Our dear beloved Vicar Pope Paul VI, he suffers much at the hands
of those he trusts. My child, shout it from the rooftops. He is
not able to do his mission. They have laid him low, My child.
He is ill, he is very ill. Now there is one who is ruling in his
place, an impostor, created from the minds of the agents of satan.
Plastic surgery, My child, the best of surgeons were used to create
this impostor. Shout from the rooftops, he must be exposed and
removed. Behind him, My child, there are three who have given
themselves to satan. You do not receive the truth in your country
and the world. Your Vicar is a prisoner...............Antonio
Casaroli, you shall condemn yourself to hell! Giovanni Benelli,
what road have you taken? You are on the road to hell and damnation!
Villot, leader of evil, take yourself from among those traitors;
you are not unknown to the Eternal Father. You consort with the
synagogue of satan. Do you think you shall not pay for the destruction
of souls in My Son's House?
The antichrist, the forces of evil have gathered, My children,
within the Eternal City. You must make it known to mankind that
all that is coming from Rome is coming from darkness. The light
has not passed that way. The appearance in public is not Paul
VI, it is the impostor pope. Medication of evil has dulled the
brain of the true Pope, Pope Paul VI. They send into his veins
poison, to dull his reasoning and paralyze his legs. What evil
creature have you opened the doors to the Eternal City and admitted
the agents of satan? You plan to remove the Eternal Father from
your hearts and the hearts of those whom you seek to deceive.
You scatter the flock............My children, you must now pray
for the light, you must know the truth. All that is given to you
is being sent from the traitorous hearts of those who have seized
power in the Eternal City of Rome. My child, you will be mocked
for this message. You will be scorned by many, but you are bringing
the truth!
The enemies within the Eternal City have opened the doors wide,
and allowed the enemies of God to enter. They consort with the
devil. You will cleanse your city. You will send out the traitors,
excommunicate the wrongdoers who do not repent of their sin. What
does it gain a man if he gain the whole world and suffer the loss
of his soul? Your gathering in worldly wealth shall give you no
passport to Heaven. Come out of the darkness. ..................It
is the diabolical plan of satan to have the hate of the world
turned to the Vicar Pope Paul VI in Rome. The plan of satan is
to heap upon his shoulders all the error and wrongdoing. However
those who he has trusted have betrayed him, have now assumed complete
control of his mission. There are in figurative language, My child,
three popes now in Rome. Three popes, My child, not counting Pope
Paul VI, three men who are being directed by satan. ..........You
cannot accept now what comes from Rome, for they do not come,
these bulls, and these directions are not written by the pen of
Pope Paul VI. They are written by the pen of Benelli and Villot.
They have given direction, My children, to Antonio Casaroli to
infiltrate into the high places of the public; conducting of emissaries
from Rome to all nations of the world agents of satan. Do you
not know now why the good have been persecuted? Do you not know
why the hands now shake the hand of the devil, the enemies of
God? (vol I page 416)
OCTOBER 6, 1975 - My child, you must make it known to the
world that There is a major deception in the Eternal City. Your
Vicar, Pope Paul VI, suffers much at the hands of his friends,
friends that have betrayed him for pieces of silver and power!
They open the doors to the Eternal City to the demons from the
abyss! All manner of abominations are being committed!.........Those
who have the highest places in My Son's Church are now using their
rank to destroy the truth! You cannot build on the carnal nature
of mankind...the fallen nature of mankind!! (vol I page 429)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975 - You must not compromise your Faith,
My children, by bringing in those who have separated themselves
from your true Church. This Church was founded by My Son and He
set a leader, a Pope, among you..................Peter and his
descendants shall rule! There shall not be set up a governing
body of hierarchy! The ruler is your Pope, Paul VI, who is very
ill and kept an invalid. I have asked you, My child, to warn the
three bishops of Rome that We are watching their actions! None
escape the Eternal Father and they shall receive a just judgment
from Him! (vol I page 439)
DECEMBER 27, 1975 - When Rome unites fully with the world,
when Rome removes the holy Father, Pope Paul, from the seat of
Peter, know that the end is at hand...............There are many
now in Rome, My children, who seek to set up a one world religion.
It is based on humanism and modernism. It is not the religion
of tradition given by My Son Jesus to mankind. Man is building
a church of man. It is not one of the cross..............Your
Holy Father, Paul, suffers much from the enemies that surround
him. He will accept a martyr's end. Do not feel sad of heart,
My child, The Father has a plan for all. It is a great grace to
accept a martyr's death. (vol I page 460)
MARCH 18, 1976 - Your Holy Father, Pope Paul VI, is now
in a great crucible of suffering. His days upon your earth are
becoming numbered in the few. You will pray for him, and in your
works seek to release him from his servitude to those tyrants
who have set themselves about him in his human weaknesses and
in his infirmity of body. (vol I page 475,476)
APRIL 10, 1976 - O My child, how many tears of sorrow do
I shed for what is coming upon your Holy Father and Our Vicar,
Pope Paul VI, in the Eternal City of Rome! The Eternal Father
in Heaven is watching as mankind is setting himself fast upon
a path of schism. There will be much strife within the Eternal
City, My child. You must keep a constant vigilance of prayer..........There
is a diabolical plan afoot to remove your Vicar this year. You
must pray much and do much penance for your Vicar, who is being
persecuted by his own...........The impostor, My child, the actor
and imitator that I have spoken of to you is one who will post
himself to bring news to the public peoples of the world..............The
political forces within the Eternal City are forces of darkness.
They will set much corruption in motion by using the medias of
communication and darkening them with all manner of confusion,
aberration, and lies. This impostor, who has been given the image
of the Pope, Our Vicar Paul VI, will pose and assume a role of
compromise to the world. It is the plan of the evil ones about
him, and I say that many are within his ranks in the Eternal City,
they will set in motion a plan to discredit your Vicar by placing
him in print and photographs in a compromising position to destroy
him............You must, My child, make it known to the world,
this plan. Do not be stopped; do not give in to your persecutors,
My child. We have chosen you for your perseverance, your endurance,
and your faith. You must join with other voice boxes of
the world in defense of your Vicar your Holy Father upon earth,
or you will all shed tears of great sorrow when they remove him
from among you and seat upon the throne of Peter one who is an
anti-pope, a man of dark secrets. (vol I page 479)
APRIL 17, 1976 - My child, you will listen carefully and
repeat after Me. It is at this time, due to the urgency of your
times, I must warn you now that the agents of 666 are in Rome,
the Eternal City. As My Mother has told you in the past, it is
the plan of this group, the agents of 666, to remove your Vicar,
Pope Paul VI, from Rome. (vol I page 484)
MAY 26, 1976 - My children, a great crisis will soon be
upon the Eternal City in Rome. Pray a constant vigilance of prayer
for your Vicar. All manner of evil is being planned against him.
My Mother can direct you in the days ahead. You cannot depend
on your human judgment, for it can be clouded by satan. (vol I
page 491)
You will pray much for your Vicar. He is under great attack from
those who are close to him. The forces, the red forces, have entered
upon Rome. Pray a constant vigilance, the power of prayer is great.
(vol I page 492)
MAY 29, 1976 - My children, the forces of evil are gathering
in the Eternal City of Rome. You must all pray a constant vigilance.
Your Holy Father has accepted a heavy cross. (vol I page 493)
JUNE 5, 1976 - The Holy Father, Pope Paul VI, is suffering
much, My children. Those whom he has trusted have turned against
him, have eaten at his table, have shared his confidence, to then
betray him. O My children, you do not listen. You go upon your
way with hardened hearts, and you have closed your ears to My
warnings. (vol I page 497)
JUNE 12, 1976 - Your Holy Father in Rome, the traitors
gather about him. A red cardinal has now set himself to rule.
(vol I page 500)
My children, you must pray much for Our Vicar, Pope Paul. He is
truly a prisoner in his home, his Church. Woe, woe to those pastors
who sit with him at the table and then produce the knife behind
his back. (vol I page 501)
Your Vicar, Our son, Pope Paul VI, he is bound, symbolically bound,
tied up, a prisoner in his own house. O you who have made yourselves
ruler by force over your Vicar, symbolically tied him up, know
that your time grows short. It is with the power allowed to satan
that you shall fall, for all that is rotten shall fall. (vol I
page 503)
JULY 24, 1976 - Continue, My children, with your prayers
of atonement. Pray for your bishops; pray for your Holy Father,
Our blessed son who now is carrying his cross. Do not be astounded
at the turn of events that will soon come upon you..................As
I directed you before, there is an impostor; there is one who
is a double for your Holy Father. The games of the reds and the
blues are played like chess, My child. You must watch well. (vol
I page 513)
There is now in the city of Rome a conspiracy of evil to remove
your Vicar from the seat of Peter. The forces, the red forces
are gathering. Pray a constant vigilance of prayer. When the upheaval
in Rome takes place, My children, know that the end of your era
is at hand. ................Unless you pray more for your bishops,
there will be chaos in Rome; bishop against bishop, cardinal against
cardinal, while satan stands in the midst of them. Blood shall
flow in the streets of Rome. Your Pastor, the leader of your sheep,
shall flee in terror. (vol I page 514)
JULY 15, 1976 - Your father, your Holy Father, Pope Paul,
is a prisoner in his own House, his Church. Recognize the signs
about you; do not be deluded by the mockers who cast aside My
direction. You must all pray a constant vigilance of prayer for
your Vicar. The agents of 666 have already chosen his successor,
My children. (vol I page 516)
JULY 24, 1976 - Unless you pray more for your bishops,
there will be chaos in Rome; bishop against bishop, cardinal against
cardinal, while satan stands in the midst of them. Blood shall
flow in the streets of Rome. Your Pastor, the leader of your sheep,
shall flee in terror. (vol I page 514)
AUGUST 21, 1976 - Your Holy Father, Pope Paul VI, is carrying
his cross with great dignity. His strength is waning. He has accepted
a living martyrdom. Pray for him, My children. There are many
traitors about him; there are only a few who have remained true.
(vol I page 525)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1976 - My child, you speculate much about
the coming Warning. I have asked you many times not to speculate
on dates, but I give you one indication that the time is ripe.
When you see, when you hear, when you feel the revolution in Rome,
when you see the Holy Father fleeing, seeking a refuge in another
land, know that the time is ripe. But beg and plead that your
good Pontiff does not leave Rome, for he will allow the man of
dark secrets to capture his throne. (vol I page 533)
OCTOBER 2, 1976 - The encyclical of Pope Paul on birth
control is true and must be followed by mankind. There shall be
no rationalization of sin. There shall be no excuse for the murder
of the unborn. Sin has become a way of life among mankind, but
Heaven does not condone murder. Heaven cannot condone sin, through
the Eternal Father in His mercy is most merciful and long-suffering
and forgiving. But man must repent of his sin now, while there
is time. Vol I page 545)
NOVEMBER 20, 1976 - Veronica: Our Lady is pointing up to
the sky. The sky has become very dark, a black color, black, a
deep black. Now the darkness is rolling away, and I can see Saint
Peter's, and Rome, the Eternal City of Rome. I can look up now
on the side of the building. It is a group of buildings, not by
the dome but off to the right side, it appears a separate building.
And I see the Holy Father coming out upon the balcony. He's being
held up on both sides by priests. They appear to be priests, they're
clerics dressed in black. I can see their Roman collars. They're
whispering to him, and he's shaking his head, 'no.' There's some
kind of a conversation going on that's upsetting our Holy Father
very much. 'No,' he says. And now they're taking him back through
these wide windows and into a room, and they're sitting him at
a desk. And he can barely hold himself up in the chair. He's placed
his hands to his eyes. He's terribly upset.............Now there
are people coming into the room. I don't recognize them. Yes,
I recognize one. It's Cardinal Villot. They are talking about
something that is upsetting the Holy Father very much, and he's
shaking his head, 'no.' His 'no' is provoking much anger with
those who are gathering now. They're coming closer to his chair.
The chair is just a little in back of a desk. Now the Eternal
City of Rome appears to be darkening............Our Lady: There
is to come upon Rome a great trial, My child. The forces of evil
have gathered. They will seek in the coming new year to remove
your Holy Father, Pope Paul VI, from his rule. Already he has
become, My child, but a figurehead in his own house, for there
are many Judas's about him; many who, for the love of money and
power, have sold their souls to get to the head. (vol I page 556)
You will carefully, My children, all that comes out of the Eternal
City. Pray that you will understand what comes from the masters
of deceit and what comes from your Holy Father. And I do caution
you, My children, your Holy Father writes little now. (vol I page
557)
DECEMBER 31, 1976 - There is now a conspiracy forming within
the Eternal City of Rome. It is an event that strikes at My heart;
tears My very being asunder, for this knowledge is of the antichrist
forces that planned to take over the city of Rome. ................This
conspiracy of evil has been building up through earth-years. There
will be a diminishing of the power of the Vatican. And should
because of the lack of prayers and penance. I say should they
progress at their present speed, the city of Rome shall face
and experience a blood bath!.................My child and My children,
the Hierarchy of the Eternal City know full well of what I speak...............Because
of the number of heretics, because of the number of Judas's in
My House, there will be allowed this trial upon the Vatican. And
I say unto you: Because of Your lukewarmness and your loss of
faith, your Vicar shall be given in sacrifice for the sins of
mankind. (vol I page 579)
My children, the Mystical Body shall be without a leader; he shall
lose his head. And there is one now in Rome with consorts, evil
consorts, who plan the removal. (vol I page 581)
V O L U
M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977 - My children, your Vicar shall be taken
from among you. Too few prayers now are given for him. Many acts
of sacrifice, many victim souls will be needed to keep him with
you throughout this year. There is in the Vatican, the Eternal
City, a force of evil so great that it shall bring great trial
upon the good, suffering to those who will stand faithful and
true. (vol II page 21)
APRIL 2, 1977 - We know the evils rampant in Rome; We know
the tortured heart of your Vicar, Pope Paul. The Eternal Father
has a plan for settling that issue. (vol II page 33)
APRIL 9, 1977 - My children, pray for your Bishops. Pray
for your Cardinals. Rome is under great siege. Persecution is
heavy for your Vicar, Pope Paul VI. He accepts his cross. And
how many of you are following his direction? Do not be deceived,
My children, by directives that bring you evil into your heart;
deception from satan. The way of My Son is a simple way. You must
follow it with purity of heart and faith, faith of a child, and
not faith that a scientist develops! In what? In his own human
capacity of knowledge and learning! Man of science, ever searching
but never coming to the truth. (vol II page 35)
MAY 14, 1977 - Rome, the Eternal City, shall be tested
by trial. Your Holy Father, Vicar, Pope Paul VI, shall be crucified.
And I say unto you: Unless great penance is performed for your
fallen hierarchy, Rome shall go through a revolution. And, My
child, you will retain the Message of My Mother in secrecy until
She allows you to give it to the world. ................Much has
been made known in the past by My Mother. Review for your knowledge
her counsel of the past, for step by step all will happen as My
Mother counseled. (vol II page 41)
MAY 28, 1977 - Your Vicar, Pope Paul VI, is a martyr for
the sins of man. Your Vicar, Pope Paul VI, his life now the time
is running out. You must all now keep a concerted effort of prayer
going throughout your world for the papacy in Rome..............The
red forces are on the march. They seek control of the throne of
Peter. My children, the man of perdition is among you. Recognize
the faces of evil about you; recognize the forces that now ensnare
the world, heading it for its own destruction! (vol II page 48)
JUNE 4, 1977 - My children, your Vicar, Pope Paul, is being
removed from the seat of Peter. You will read the messages, the
past messages from Heaven, and learn by them. (vol II page 54)
JUNE 18, 1977 - Your Father in the eternal city of Rome,
Pope Paul VI, your Holy father, is a blessed man, for he carries
his cross. Your Holy Father is a blessed man for he shall be martyred.
(vol II page 60)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1977 - Pray for them! Pray for your bishops!
Pray for your cardinals, and pray for the Holy Father in Rome,
who is under great attack. His constitution, his physical constitution,
cannot stand much longer. My children, it will be the greatest
of trials to you when he is removed, for you will have in Rome
then a full capitulation to an antichrist pope. (vol II page 80)
FEBRUARY 1, 1978 - Without prayers and penance of the world
much blood shall be shed in the streets of Rome. Persecution shall
be set upon the Holy Father. Many shall cry out for his blood.
There are many traitors sitting at his table now. For the Red
Hat has fallen and the Purple Hat is being misled. (vol II page
117)
MARCH 15, 1978 - You must pray for you Vicar, Pope Paul
VI. He is truly being crucified by his own. Disobedience and arrogance
surround him. His enemies sit with him at his table plotting his
removal. (vol II page 129)
MARCH 18, 1978 - You must all pray and do penance for the
welfare of the Holy Father in Rome, Pope Paul VI. He has many
traitors at his table with him. They seek to remove him and place
one, a man of dark secrets upon the seat. Pray, My children, a
constant vigilance of prayer for your Pope Paul VI. (vol II page
131)
MAY 20, 1978 - Your Holy Father, Our child of suffering,
Pope Paul VI, is approaching the end of his reign upon earth.
How many shall be held responsible for the anguish which tore
his heart? How many of you cardinals and bishops have disobeyed
him in your arrogance and love of worldly pursuits and pleasure
and power? The Eternal Father has looked into your hearts and
found many of you wanting. (vol II page 149)
The suffering victim soul, your Holy Father, Pope Paul, he accepts
his suffering with good heart. And there are many Judas's about
him who parade themselves as angels of light, but they have ravenous
hearts of wolves. In disobedience they have used their rank to
destroy from within. It was not in vain that Our Vicar cried out
to you, "There must be cracks within, for the smoke of satan
has seeped in." (vol II page 150)
MAY 27, 1978 - The Holy Father, Pope Paul, shall be removed
from among you. He has been long suffering and will now receive
his rest. Woe to you, O mankind, for you shall accept the prime
advocate of evil and you shall seat him upon the Seat of Rome.
(vol II page 154)
MAY 30, 1978 - I have asked you, My children, to pray for
your Holy Father, Pope Paul, in Rome. Already those in command,
who have assumed command by fraud, are planning his successor,
and he shall be the agent of hell...................Do not go
about disparaging your Holy Father, Pope Paul VI. He is not the
antichrist. You are deluded in your reasoning if you place this
title upon him. He is not the antichrist pope. The next one shall
be he? (vol II page 155)
JUNE 18, 1978 - Your Holy Father, Pope Paul, is kept under
stricter surveillance by his enemies within the ranks...........My
children, do not condemn your Holy Father, Pope Paul in Rome.
He has made human errors in the past; I grant you this, My children,
as he is still a human being, but they are no major errors. The
enemy is in his own house, in the Eternal City of Rome. The Hierarchy
has become infiltrated. (vol II page 166)
I do not at this time have to go though a long discourse with
you, My children, giving you names and dates; I am certain that
with the grace from Heaven you have received this knowledge from
other sources. (vol II page 167)
AUGUST 14, 1978 - I bring you the glad news, My child and
My children; I give you this knowledge from the Eternal Father,
that your Vicar this day is with Us in Heaven. I know, My child,
it will spare you many tears. You will understand all in time.
Now repeat, My child, the message given to you, for now at this
time it will have more meaning to all mankind. (vol II page 180)
My children, Our Vicar, your Holy Father upon earth, was sacrificed
for you. I cannot describe to you with your limited knowledge
of the supernatural, the manner of his sacrifice. Be it enough
that I say unto you that in the days ahead there will be many
martyrs, there will be many latter-day saints coming out of the
conflagration. (vol II page 181)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1978 - In the city of Rome there will be great
confusion and trial. Satan, Lucifer in human form, entered into
Rome in the year 1972. He cut off the rule, the role of the Holy
Father, Pope Paul VI. Lucifer has controlled Rome and continues
this control now. And I tell you, My children, unless you pray
and make My counsel known to all of the founding fathers of the
Eternal City of Rome, My Son's Church, His House, will be forced
into the catacombs. A great struggle lies ahead for mankind. The
eventual outcome is for good of all, for this trial in My Son's
Church will be a true proving ground for all the faithful. Many
latter day saints shall rise out of the tribulation. (vol II page
186)
M
E S S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - Many because of the mistakes made
issuing forth from the good hearts of John XXIII, Pope Paul VI;
many have taken the messages and the directions given at the Vatican
Council and twisted them to suit themselves, reading in the Bible
words of their own, or finding excuses for their sinning, through
the Bible.
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG) - .....and I say, My poor
children, remember My words: When you become ill, be it physical,
mental, or sorrowfully in your heart, you will say, my Jesus,
my confidence! And I will truly succor you. I use that word, My
child, 'succor', because it was a favorite word of one of Our
sons of My Son's House. Yes, you know, and all know who this was,
though he met an untimely death, as did the other who came after
him.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG) - My child, you are looking into
Rome on that horrendous day when the Holy Father shall leave you.
I say 'shall' because the Message is being rejected in Rome. The
previous messages about this carnage to the Holy See and the
Holy Father has been taken with a manner of laughter. Too late
will they laugh and refer to My visitation in New York as being
absurd. My child and My children, that is satan. And as a holy
Pope once told you before he died, he knew that the smoke of satan
had entered into Rome and the Vatican. Well did he understand
My visit to him, My child. The world has never known how close
I was to your Vicar at that time, Pope Paul VI. Yes, My child,
he was removed from the earth, also, with his impostor.
OCTOBER 3, 1991 (MSG) - For Our Lady once more revealed
to Jacinta, shortly before her death in February 1920, what is
really the essence of the Third Secret of Fatima; that 666, satan,
the forces of antichrist, would enter the highest realms of the
hierarchy in Rome beginning in the year 1972!.......................Now
we know from Our Lady's messages that beginning in 1972, Pope
Paul VI was kept a virtual prisoner in the Vatican. Some ecclesiastics
in the highest positions of the hierarchy, being infiltraters
or having fallen from grace, drugged the good Pope, censored his
mail, forged his documents, and finally staged an impostor to
complete their sinister plan. ......Pope Paul himself gave the
world an indication of this terrible situation on June 29, 1972,
when he said: "From some fissure the smoke of satan entered
into the Temple of God."
POPE JOHN (33 DAYS)
MAY 21, 1983 - We will go back, My child, in history, a
short history, and remember well what had happened in Rome to
John. Pope John whose reign lasted 33 days. O My child, it is
history now, but it is placed in the book that lists disasters
to mankind. He received the horror and martyrdom by drinking from
a glass. It was a champagne glass given to him by a now deceased
member of the clergy and the secretariat of state. (vol II page
385)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG) - .....and I say, My poor
children, remember My words: When you become ill, be it physical,
mental, or sorrowfully in your heart, you will say, my Jesus,
my confidence! And I will truly succor you. I use that word, My
child, 'succor', because it was a favorite word of one of Our
sons of My Son's House. Yes, you know, and all know who this was,
though he met an untimely death, as did the other who came after
him.
POPE JOHN PAUL II
V O L U
M E I
SEPTEMBER 13, 1978 - My child, you will understand soon
the meaning of this message. You must pray now for your new Vicar.
There is a foul plan afoot against him. (vol II page 190)
NOVEMBER 20, 1978 - And majoraly, the biggest fault of
all to mankind, because man has turned now from his Creator, I
must now make known to you, My children. As I told you in the
past, Lucifer has been released from hell with many other demons
in his legion of demons now loosed upon earth. Lucifer is in Rome
and plans to destroy the papacy. My children, pray for your new
Pope. He must be given the strength even unto the point of martyrdom
if necessary. He must not allow Communism to control Rome. (vol
II page 200)
NOVEMBER 25, 1978 - Open letter to Pope John Paul II -
Dear Son, Our Vicar upon earth: Remember always your heritage,
even unto martyrdom, for of such trial are many led to sainthood.
Accept as your strength Hyacinth, and follow his lead, or the
great Chastisement shall be set upon mankind. Will you not help
Me again, My Son? Convert Russia. Do not hasten to promote division
in My Son's Church. Save the world from the great flames of the
Ball of Redemption that fast approaches your world and mankind.
(vol II page 204)
DECEMBER 7, 1978 - I have given to you, My child, a message
for your Vicar, and he must act upon it. Should he proceed by
following the ways of man, using humanism and modernism to the
destruction of souls and My Son's Church, I cannot then any longer
hold back the heavy hand of punishment from mankind. (vol II page
208)
My children, pray for your Vicar. There is a plot against him.
He must not wander too far from the Eternal City. (vol II page
209)
Pray, My child. Perform many acts of mortification. Pray for your
Holy Vicar. Pray that he will have the strength to resist temptation
and have the strength to fight for his Faith. Remind him to remember
the path of Hyacinth. (vol II page 210)
JUNE 2, 1979 - Pray for your Holy Father in Rome. He must
conduct his mission with holiness and dignity. He will lose much
if he seeks to compromise with the enemy. I repeat, children,
My children: It is better that there are few with quality, than
quantity of nothingness with death and destruction.................You
will send this message to John Paul II. He is in grave danger.
I have asked him in the past to not make many trips away from
his homeland, which is now the Seat of Peter in Rome. (vol II
page 221)
JUNE 18, 1979 - You will all pray for your Holy Father
in Rome, Pope John Paul II. There is a devious and diabolical
force now trying to tear asunder My Son's Church. The laity must
now go forward and save My Son's Church. (vol II page 227)
AUGUST 4, 1979 - Pray for your Pope in Rome, the Bishop
of Rome; he is under great attack. Unless you pray for your Pope,
he will go the way of the others. (vol II page 239)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1979 - My child and My children, continue
your prayers of atonement. Pray for your Vicar, Pope John Paul
II. There is now being planned an attack upon him. Only prayers
and your prayers and the prayers of your country can stop this
diabolical plan. (vol II page 249)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1979 - St. Michael: Watch, my child, as I
send you a message of dire urgency from Heaven. What was to happen
in the future shall be now! I, Michael, guardian of the Faith,
trustee of Heaven tell you now that you have received the final
warning from Heaven, to bow down before your God, the Lord Jesus
on high in the Trinity, and do penance; or you will have an empty
chair to be filled by the Bear, the white Bear of Communism. Pray,
My children of grace, a constant vigil of prayer for your Vicar;
for the enemy has set forth a plan to crucify your Vicar....Rat-a-ta-ta-ta-ta-ta-tat...........Veronica:
Ohh! I hear, I hear a great commotion. I hear the stomping of
feet and I hear people screaming! And I hear "rat-a-ta-ta-tat"
like something, I don't know, it's like pellets or machine-gun
fire. I hear screams, and voice of a woman saying Oh no-o-o-oh!
Oh!
Our Lady: My child, at this moment, there is a plot against your
Vicar. You ask, My child, must this be? There is a plan for all
in Heaven, My child. You will not ask Me further, but you will
continue the prayers for your Vicar...............Remember, My
children and My child, I have given fair warning to the world,
that if you refused the Message from Heaven, you would be put
to great test. Michael, the guardian of My Son's Church upon earth,
must be returned now to his rightful place in My Son's Church
and in the hearts of all mankind. The supernatural must not be
rejected any longer. Disobedience to your Vicar will not be tolerated
by the Eternal Father in matters of faith and morals. (vol II
page 250)
My child and My children, because of the gravity of the present
time, you must all keep now a constant vigilance of prayer. A
direct attack from Lucifer will be attempted against your Vicar.
.........If they are not successful in carrying forth their plan
in the United States, it will be in Rome. That is why, My child,
such grief, sorrow is upon My heart. Can We, My child, you ask
prevent it? You cannot understand the Eternal Father in His ways,
My child. The Eternal Father allows man to proceed upon his own
course. No evil is ever triumphant. The Eternal Father will turn
all evil to good. (vol II page 251)
OCTOBER 2, 1979 - My child and My children, the crisis
for Our Vicar has not passed. His life is in great danger as he
remains in the United States of America. There are great forces
of evil loosed now to endeavor to destroy him, or set in motion
a manner of revolution that will bring a great multitude of deaths
in his presence. I ask you all to continue your prayers of atonement,
your sacrifices; and We ask major acts of penance from all. (vol
II page 253)
You will all keep a constant vigil of prayer going throughout
your country and the world. As I directed you before, Lucifer
seeks to remove your Vicar, so that the Chair of Peter shall be
empty. Confusion then will abound. And then, without your prayers
and acts of penance, will come the end! (vol II page 254)
Pray a constant vigilance of prayer now in your country. You who
go about crying love and brotherhood for My Vicar; but how many
of you pray for him? While you give him all the gifts of the world,
how many of your pray for him!? You cannot take satan from his
course by your gifts of money, your gifts of outward displays
of 'love'! Fir it is by 'love and brotherhood' that you shall
destroy yourselves. (vol II page 256)
OCTOBER 6, 1979 - My child and My children: All Heaven
is pleased at the moment, with the manner in which you have chosen
to help your Vicar, and all of your brethren and sisters upon
earth, with your sacrifices, your prayers, and your penance. However,
the danger to your Vicar has not abated. He must be escorted by
prayer until he leaves your country, the United States. And with
him must go along his journey, many prayers and acts of sacrifice,
because 666, the agents of hell, will work in full power of darkness,
to alleviate being recognized by the world in their sin, and the
manner in which these demons from hell seek to destroy mankind,
both physically and spiritually; and seek in like manner to destroy
your Vicar. You must all keep a constant vigilance of prayer going
throughout your country and the world for your Vicar. (vol II
page 257)
Many clergy have given themselves over to pleasures of the flesh.
Many have fallen into sin and heresy, and have cast aside the
truth of their vocations. Many now rebel against their leader,
their God-given leader, your Vicar. In matters of Faith and Morals,
man must not change the God-given laws, coming from the Seat of
Peter, and established through Tradition upon earth through My
Son's Church.................Your country, My child, the United
States of America, My child and My children, how light and gladdened
were Our hearts at the reception given to your Vicar. But how
saddened now are Our hearts to know, that soon his words will
be forgotten; and the confusion will reign anew, the disobedience
shall accelerate....O My children, pray now! Pray always! Your
life must be now a life of prayer, and retirement from a world
that has been given over to satan, to claim his own. (vol II page
258)
My child and My children, I will not give you a further discourse
upon the state of the souls of mankind. Be it known to you at
this time that all of Heaven has watched with eager hearts to
see, perhaps if but for a short time the rise of the flickering
of candles of faith throughout your world. It is not unknown to
Us that this great display will soon be abated, and replaced by
cynicism, doubts, confusion and disobedience to Our Vicar................I
ask you all to maintain him; sustain him with your prayers and
acts of confidence at this time. The danger to him is great in
his mission. He is also human and subject to slights. He is subject
to human frailties and errors. However, in matters of Faith and
Morals, he too shall pray for the guidance from Heaven to gather
Our straying sheep. (vol II page 259)
The war of the spirits rages. The attempts upon your Vicar for
his life will be numerous. The Eternal Father has a plan in the
days ahead. Pray for your Vicar; pray for your Bishops, your clergy.
Lucifer has many attacks planned upon them. (vol II page 260)
DECEMBER 24, 1979 - Please, My children, pray for your
Vicar. My Son's representatives upon earth are under great attack.
And you must warn Our Vicar, Pope Paul, John Paul II, that there
is a plan to remove him from the Seat of Peter. The Brown Bear
shall try to manipulate the White Bear...............My children,
not all will understand these symbols. But, for reason, those
who are to know will understand. The Brown Bear will manipulate
the White Bear. Therefore, you must not permit the White Bear
to take over the Seat of Peter by the assassination of John Paul
II. (vol II page 269)
OCTOBER 6, 1980 - You will pray for your Holy Father, Pope
Paul, in Rome, John Paul II. You will pray for the clergy, the
cardinals, the bishops, for, without your prayers, many cannot
escape the paws of the Bear. Sadly, many in the world will sell
their souls to get to the head, and many will turn their backs
on My Tabernacle. (vol II page 278)
MAY 30, 1981 - Your world, My child and My children, has
not progressed back to the Eternal Father. Should you receive
now one chastisement so sorely due to you for your disobedience
to Our Vicar; do you as a nation, do you, all nations of the world,
deserve the continuance of the struggle of Our Vicar for your
salvation, or shall you, through your own actions, force the hand
of the Eternal Father upon you by abandoning you to your sin?
Your nation, the United States, and all nations of the earth,
none shall escape the fires..................But, My child, as
you well know in My discourse with you the past weeks, satan will
seek to stop the prayers, the acts of atonement and sacrifice
that will be needed to save your Vicar. A victim soul must take
his place, My child, do not be affrighted, you cannot be this
victim. (vol II page 282)
AUGUST 14, 1981 - Do not give way, My children, to the
medias that have lulled and dulled your senses in repeating to
you of the safety of your Vicar. I must warn you at this time
that your Vicar is not safe. There will be another attempt upon
his life in the city of Rome, brought on by the red forces. My
child, grieve not because all is controlled and allowed by the
Eternal Father. (vol II page 295)
MARCH 18, 1983 - I have wandered throughout the world crying
to My children, and My tears fall upon you, for as I have cried
for obedience to your Eternal Father in Heaven and, also, to Our
Pope, Our poor Vicar, who suffers much on the hands of the enemies
of your God. ..........You must pray for your bishops, you must
pray for all the clergy, and especially you must stand behind
your Vicar, Pope John Paul II, because there will be another attempt
upon his life. My child, that is why, principally, that I brought
you here this evening, so that this message must go out to the
world. Already the vermin are gathering to plan the next assassination
attempt upon your holy Vicar. You must pray for him do much penance,
make many sacrifices. That is the only gauge you have to save
his earthly life. (vol II page 377)
I have asked, My child, you to get through the Eternal Father,
prayer is not enough; you must write now, My child, write and
write again, and tell him, he must not venture outside of Rome
until next year..................Veronica is shown a scene: I
see a large gathering of people. And I see a man. He's dressed
as a cleric, the clergy. He has in his left hand a knife. It's
a long knife, no it's like a saber, I don't know, he's pulling
it out of his pants. It seems to be in his pant leg near his belt.
And its very long. And he's pulling it our with his left hand
and starting to raise it, and with his right hand he has a revolver,
a small gun, not a shotgun, a small gun. And he's screaming, and
everything has become silent about him with the screams, "Death
to the Pope! Death to the Pope!"..................And then
people are frozen in shock. They don't jump on him. Jump on him!
Get them! Stop him!.................Our Lady! Yes, My child, you
have now received a most explicit picture of the actions being
planned by the enemies of God............Unless you pray for your
Vicar, Pope John Paul II, he will be removed from among you. And
if this takes place, there will be far worse sacrilege committed
in the city of Rome and parishes throughout the world................Up
to this time, My child and My children you know full well that
the wishes and the directions from Rome, from the Eternal Father
in Heaven, through Pope John Paul II, they have been cast aside,
each and every individual going his own way and making My Son's
House a shambles..............That, My child, is symbolism of
what is to be. When Pope John Paul II is removed, the Church
shall be divided among itself. United it will stand, divided
it will fall. (vol II page 378)
MAY 21, 1983 - There are many enemies of God and
those who have infiltrated into the papacy with one purpose to
set forth a plan to eliminate Our dear Vicar, Pope John Paul II.
As I told you before, My children, in My discourse with you, you
must pray for your Holy Father or he will be removed from among
you, and then there would be more chaos in Rome.............Yes,
My child, I know of your news broadcast. I know also that this
is a warning that must be noticed by your Vicar. ............My
child, letters have been sent to your Vicar; and Our child, though
he be a Pope, he is Our child also, and he must listen and act
upon the message given to him or he will die. (vol II page 385)
O My children, I have asked you to pray for your pastors, pray
for Our priests. Pray for your bishops, and especially, for the
life of your Vicar Pope John Paul II................Yes, My child,
it is not the first time that murder has been and will be committed
around the city of Rome in Italy.....I can only assure you, My
child and My children, that prayers can move mountains, and, therefore,
prayer can stay the execution of your Vicar. Pray a constant vigil
of prayer. Keep these prayers going as link to link, bead to bead,
throughout the world for your Vicar. (vol II page 386)
JUNE 18, 1983 - My child, We have started a little late
on your calendar to start giving out all messages that pertain
to the future of Rome. I know you are all wondering of the safety
of John Paul II while he travels to gather the sheep. I assure
you, My children, We are gathering all the prayers for your Vicar,
and there is a balance above him. This will be in your hands,
My children, to keep this balance even, that it does not completely
go over to the left side and you will lose your Vicar, Our child,
John Paul II. He has many enemies, as you, My child, know full
well that in any mission from Heaven there will be enemies of
God. I ask you, My children, to pray for your Vicar. Pray for
him, and in your acts of charity, give all to your Vicar that
he may remain upon this earth. There is a plan, a terrible plan,
My child, being developed this evening to remove the Pope, Our
child, Pope John Paul II from among you. Pray, My children a constant
vigilance of prayer. Have these prayers going from and, to one
part of your country to the other. Have these prayers lift to
Heaven. All acts of mercy for the Eternal Father shall be gathered
also for His repatriation. (vol II page 391,392)
JUNE 18, 1984 - Do not let those who preach heresy change
your hearts and take you away from My Church. Your Vicar is in
great danger. Once more, there is a plot now afoot against him.
He has many enemies. Though he has a loving heart, he has many
enemies, as so did I upon the cross. (vol II page 405)
JUNE 30, 1984 - O My children, pray, pray, pray!! Pray
for your Vicar. There will be another attempt upon his life. Pray
for your Vicar. Do not judge him by the medias, for he is a good
man, with a heart that is soft, and often he can be misled. However,
he is a good man, and he is one who I keep now under My mantle
for his protection. But We need your sacrifices, if you want him
to remain among you. As I say, I will repeat again: There will
be another attempt upon his life, and this one, My child, shall
be serious. (vol II page 410)
M E S
S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - My child, I say this, for satan has
entered into the highest realms of the Hierarchy now. And this
I say unto you, stop them now while there is time. Approach your
priests, for they are planning the extermination of Pope John
Paul II before the Synod. ..........My child, I repeat anew: Why
has Rome and Our Vicar given up the course that the Eternal Father
gave to Me to pass on to you children? Why are they opening the
doors for another attempt at assassination to your Pope, Our son,
John Paul II?.............See that picture, My child. There is
silver, much silver being placed upon a table, and hungry eyes
look at it until like the magic of satanism their minds are clouded.
And I see among them many clerics; they are Roman Catholic clerics.
They among those.....who are plotting the assassination of Pope
John Paul. May God, My children, have mercy on their souls, and
stop them before it is too late. They cannot hide their guilt
from the Eternal Father. And as they mislead the flock, and even
stoop to murder to get their way, they are nothing but agents
of hell. ...........My child, I shall send many agents from Heaven,
angels to protect the Holy Father. But you who are on earth must
do your part, for in no way must you have a measure, in the end
of responsibility for your lack of cooperation with the instructions
from Heaven to save your Holy Father, the Vicar on earth, John
Paul II
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, you will
also pray for John Paul II, for his time is growing short. There
will be an attack upon him, I say "will be," the outcome
I cannot give you now, for only you, and you alone, My children
of the earth, can save your Vicar, John Paul II................Yes,
My child, it is sad to have to report to you that those who are
close to him three figures in your photographs, My children, three
figures with great power, who are planning the fate of your Vicar.
You must warn him to be clear of those about him. When he reads
their writings he will understand. However, We also ask that he
spend less time in going to and fro across the nations, for he
makes it doubly difficult for Us to protect him................Pray
a constant vigilance of prayer. You have a good and holy
Father now in Rome, but should he be removed there will
come disaster.
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG) - My child, I wish for prayers
of atonement, especially for the protection of the Holy Father
in Rome. As I have warned you, the time is growing short, and
the enemies of My Son's Church are accelerating in their plan
to do away with your Vicar; your Vicar who has been sent to you
by God the Father to save the whole institution of religion in
the world, and not have it fall into the hands of the egomaniacs
that reside in the land called Russia. ........My child and My
children, this could be an occasion of great joy, My coming to
you. But the fate of humanity and the world lies in the hands
and the hearts of the faithful. Without your prayers and your
acts of penance, you cannot save your Pope, and Our son, your
Vicar. I will say, in My Mother's heart, from My Mother's heart
to you, that your Vicar will soon meet with an enemy, who comes
as an angel of light to him, but is an enemy of My Son's Church,
and all of My Son's churches throughout the world. We choose,
My child, to call them the House of God, because it is a home,
a refuge, for all of Our children who suffer, and are brought
to naught by modern science. In this way We hope that modern science
will accept the supernatural, but they rather would cast it aside,
My child and My children.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG) - Veronica: Now it's growing
very dark, very dark. And I see, high in the sky, a building becoming
evident. It is in Rome. I see a large Basilica, St. Peter's Basilica.
And I see a black flag draped over the doors and the windows.
Oh, it's so frightening. ................And I see Our Lady now.
She has moved from beyond the trees, where She was talking with
me, and She's going forward, and fast, high into the sky. She
has emerged now out of the sky, and is standing directly above
the Basilica. Our Lady now is desperately trying to take Her mantle
from both sides and stand on the Basilica. All about Her, I see
faces - hundreds of faces, shocked faces...tears crying and falling
upon the multitudes. What is this, Blessed Mother? ......... My
child, you are looking into Rome on that horrendous day when the
Holy Father shall leave you. I say "shall" because the
Message is being rejected in Rome. The previous messages about
this carnage to the Holy See and the Holy Father has been taken
with a manner of laughter. Too late will they laugh and refer
to My visitation in New York as being absurd. My child and My
children, that is satan. And as a holy Pope once told you before
he died, he knew that the smoke of satan had entered into Rome
and the Vatican. Well did he understand My visit to him, My child.
The world has never known how close I was to your Vicar at that
time, Pope Paul VI. Yes, My child, he was removed from the earth,
also with his impostor.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - St. Michael: Veronica, my child,
announce to the world that the end approaches for your most illustrious
President of the United States, and, also, your Pope, John Paul
II.................I know, my child, Veronica, that this has affrighted
you, but it is most frightening to know that we cannot get enough
peoples upon earth to pray and assist the Holy Father in his day
of suffering. Yes, my child and my children, tell the world immediately
that the Holy Father suffers greatly for he too, has been given
insight in visions to know what lies ahead for him. But he is
willing to suffer all for the salvation of souls and the good
of the Holy Church. ...........My child and My children, especially,
My child, Veronica, We had to bring you this evening from your
sickbed, knowing that what We asked of you would not be denied.
It was urgent, My child, for you to be here this evening, though
satan sent his cohorts to try to stop you and thwart you at every
step and turn. ..............My child, you must shout it from
the rooftops: The enemies of your God have now held a meeting,
and they have listed on parchment, a paper, which I will show
you, My child.....The first two names you will reveal, and the
other three must be held for another time.
Veronica: Our Lady is pointing up now to the sky, and I see a
large parchment of paper. I call it parchment because it doesn't
look like the paper we use; it looks like something that has had,
like oil on it. And it's heavy, and the writing is very heavy.
And I see numbered up to the number five. I see number one; it
says Ronald Reagan. I see number two: John Paul II. I see number
three: Veronica Lueken.................My child, do not be affrighted.
You must understand that nothing will come to you and harm you
unless it is in the plan of the Father for the good of all mankind.
Your heart is pounding, My child; I repeat again: Do not be affrighted
but pray for your President, and pray for your Holy Father, Pope
John Paul II. ...........Now I want it known to you that the
very ones who plan the extinction of Ronald Reagan and Pope John
Paul the II are sitting at this time at a table in Russia. They
do not do their own murdering, My child; they have others do it
for money.
Even though the Pope, himself, wished this movie to be stopped,
yet for the sake of money they sold out the Eternal Father. They
sold Him out like they did to Me, many years ago, for pieces of
silver. Yes, My children, that is all it amounts to, money! That
is the reason for the showing of that picture. But how many could
stay there without vomiting for what came forward from that screen.
...............I say again: I extend, Our hearts to all who made
such a great effort of show to stop the abomination from being
committed in the theaters of New York. Surely, My children, if
they could get it out of Italy, you can get it out of the United
States, and Canada, which it is approaching.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG) - You see, My child and My children,
We allowed the disaster in Russia. It was to try to awaken Russia
into coming back to the fold. They are creating much chaos throughout
the world, and for this reason We must bring them to their knees.
..........You must pray for your Holy Father, the Pope. There
will be another attempt upon his life...........Yes, My child,
though he means well, it would be best if he discards his habit
of going to and fro. For it is upon one of these journeys that
he will be destroyed. ...............Pray for all sinners. Pray
for those who run the governments of the world. And above all,
remember to pray for the Holy Father, Pope John Paul II, in Rome,
for his time is growing short..........Russia, being an atheistic
country, My children, Russia, you cannot believe what they tell
you, nor what they print in their tabloids. Russia has but one
plan; to capture the whole world. They will do this without heart
or conscience. Therefore, know that I ask again, as your God in
the Trinity, I ask you to contact the Holy Father, through pen
or prose, or the written script, to contact the Holy Father and
beg him to consecrate Russia to the Immaculate Heart of My Mother.
This has not been done, My children. That is why as time goes
on, until that grain goes through the hourglass forever, that
is why you will undergo great suffering.
JUNE 18, 1986 (MSG) - I wish at this time, My children,
to repeat again the need to write, to speak, to meet with the
Holy Father in Rome, and plead with him to have Lucy come forward
and tell the Third Secret word for word, as I give to you each
evening on My appearances upon the grounds of Bayside, and Flushing
Meadows.
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 (MSG) - Tell the world, My child, in
great haste that the Red Bear is planning to kill Our Holy Father,
your Vicar on earth, John Paul II, when he meets with the nations
in common prayer. You will not fully understand what I say to
you, My child, but I repeat it again: Shout from the rooftops,
until your words, the words from Heaven, reach the Holy Father
in Rome. The Red Bear is planning to kill your Vicar, your Holy
Father upon earth, John Paul II, when he meets with the nations
in common prayer....................It has become a most distressing
situation for the Eternal Father. Many He would remove from the
See of Peter, but it seems, My children, that the only way they
can be removed is from force; for they do not hearken to the threats
nor even the advice and counsel of the Holy Father in Rome. ...........Your
successor to Peter has been chosen well. We sat him upon the Throne
of Peter for the principal reason to return My Son's Church to
its original state. Understand well, My children, that he is also
a human being subject to error. But this does not mean that he
is to be subjected to derision and hate, until you build up a
fire within the hearts of those who are seeking to destroy him.
Better that you pray for the Holy Father than to deride him. Do
not question him at this time, because I assure you My
children, as he will tell you due time, I too, have appeared to
the Holy Father.
We do not want division within the Church. That will solve nothing.
You cannot separate yourself from the Holy Father in Rome. And
once you are baptized as a Roman Catholic, you must die within
the fold; you cannot reject it. There are many false prophets
going throughout the world now seeking to take your soul to satan.
They come as angels of light. ..............Now I want you to
listen to Me as I repeat for you one of the long discourses you
had with Saint Theresa. And I do it for a reason, that it goes
to the world because this dear Holy Father is the one in Rome
who is suffering now at the hands of his own. His Bishops will
fight Bishop against Bishop; there will be Cardinals against Cardinals;
and satan has set himself in the midst. But you will all remember
the 'Exhortation' and recite it well to those who wish to affront
you.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG) - For peace, My child, there is much
asked for peace upon earth. I must tell you this: There will be
no peace, My children, until what has happened in the past with
My visit to Fatima is consummated. Now this has to be done, My
children: I repeat this anew, as I have repeated it, as I have
gone hinder and yon, across the earth to try to enlighten My children
as to the road to true peace, you must now cast aside, abrogate,
the union of Rome with Russia. For Russia must be consecrated
to My Immaculate Heart for a true peace................My child,
I want you now, for it is greatly urgent for your country, that
you take three photographs; but they must remain a great secret,
that will be given to the Pope in due time. Not one word must
be uttered when these pictures are given, My child, for they will
give you the road of mankind............My child, the road to
peace has been given to the world. You must write and implore
your Holy Father in Rome to make known the full message of Fatima.
There is no time to be wasted! Your country, My child, is in great
distress, though your medias have camouflaged this from you. Your
country will meet with a great distress and loss of life in the
Gulf, the Persian Gulf. No, My child, you cannot accept as full
knowledge all that the media impart to you; for they, too, are
under control.
The Vatican-Moscow Agreement
Secret negotiations between the Holy See and the Kremlin took
place at Metz, France, in 1962. Cardinal Tisserant, Pope John
XXIII's own representative and a member of the Vatican Curia,
met with Archbishop Nikodim, the Kremlin spokesman, who at the
time was head of the department of the external relations of the
Russian Orthodox Church, which is an instrument of the Soviet
State and of the Communist Party. At this meeting, John XXIII,
through his negotiator, Cardinal Tisserant, promised not to attack
the people or the Communist regime of Russia at the Council in
order to secure Moscow's permission for the Russian Orthodox observers
to attend Vatican II They subsequently did attend. This was the
pre-condition set down by Moscow for participation, and it was
strictly observed at the Council. In fact, the Church observed
the Agreement so well that neither during nor after the Council
was there any direct attack on the Communist regime. To this day,
the Treaty remains in full force.
My child, you do not understand the full meaning of that message,
but in due time I will make it known to you. .........Yes, My
child, as I told you before you left for the grounds, this would
not be a message of great solace but of truth. We expect you,
My child, to get this message, also, to the Holy Father, Pope
John Paul II in Rome, that he must put aside the Treaty he has
accepted from others, to keep from giving My Mother the necessary
ammunition, We will say, My child, I will use your term as used
upon earth, to fight satan. You must consecrate Russia to the
Immaculate Heart of My Mother, or there will be no peace, if but
for a time. .......Remember, My child, the Pope, John Paul II
in Rome, he must be besieged by letters to stop now the carnage
going throughout the world; or Russia shall enter upon your nation
and Canada. ...........My child and My children, remember now,
I have asked you to contact Pope John Paul II, and tell him he
must rescind the Treaty, the Pact made with Russia; for only in
that way shall you have a true peace.
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG) - My child. there is a message I have
for you of great urgency. You understand that I have gone throughout
the world with the same message; the one about the Treaty of Russia
and the Vatican. I have asked that this be put aside by Pope John
Paul II....And now, My child, I must ask that you write, that
you all write, to Cardinal Casaroli, who is influencing the Holy
Father to not listen to this message. His influence shall bring
great penance to his soul if he does not come from his course
of appeasement, which shall lead to enslavement for many............My
child and My children, I do not have to go into a long discourse
to tell you of the evils of Communism. The world, and its condition,
speaks for itself............Now, My child, I ask for the good
of all humanity, that they approach Pope Paul by letter, by ear,
by mail, any way possible, by human means and supernatural means
of prayer, to turn back from the present course of appeasement
with Russia. For Russia has one thing in mind; that is, to take
over the United States, Canada, and all nations of the world............My
child and My children, My Mother many years ago came to Fatima.
Her story has not changed much through the years. She repeats
the same message to all, for it has not been fulfilled................I
will repeat again for My Mother, that We wish that you all write
to Cardinal Casaroli in Rome and beg him, if necessary, to put
aside his false pride, and not mislead Pope John Paul II any longer.
If necessary, if he does not listen to this counsel, We will be
forced to remove him.
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG) - When I came to Fatima many years
ago, I knew that communism would go throughout the world destroying
many nations and attacking My Son's Church. Therefore, I made
a promise that if the Pope, the Pope of those days and the Pope
today, would unite and pray for the consecration of Russia. I
do not mean the world, My children; I mean Russia, Russia, the
scourge of mankind. You will pray for Russia. One day must be
allotted in which Pope John Paul II and, also, all the bishops
of the world must unite on one day, I repeat, and pray for Russia;
or Russia will continue to be the scourge from God. Russia will
continue to go throughout the world annihilating people and places
and countries............O My children, how I wanted to caress
you and tell you good news, for I am not the bearer of bad news
always. I am your Mother and must tell you the truth. I repeat
again, My child Veronica; you repeat now in your weakened state,
again; the Pope, John Paul II, and all the bishops of the world
must allot one day on which they will pray for the conversion
of Russia. Not one day for the world, but one day for Russia;
or else, I tell you now, Russia will go about and annihilate,
destroy many countries. Nations shall disappear from the face
of the earth in the twinkling of an eye. That is how desperate
the situation is now throughout your world, My children.
You do not know, My poor children, what Our eyes have seen as
We looked into the dungeons of the communist organizations; the
beatings, the scalding, the torturing. It is beyond all human
reasoning that a human being could try to destroy the whole faith
of an individual by beatings, by torturing, even by cutting out
the tongues of those who had dared to speak against them. And
who are these people, My children, who are doing these vile things?
In those days when communism enters your country, it will be your
own family and your neighbors. ............Yes, My child, I know
you are shocked at this, but this is what is going to happen unless
the bishops and Pope John Paul II listen to My plea. We have approached
them many times; however, I do not understand their fear of Russia.
There is nothing to fear but fear itself, for fear is a tool of
the devil...........My child and My children, do not be affrighted
by this, for there is still time to stop them. But you must do
that now! You must get first in touch with the Holy Father, Pope
John Paul II. Now this will be most difficult, because he has
many agents who work with him that are not in the light. They
are in his Secretarial Department, the Secretariat. They do not
tell him of his messages. It is difficult, unless you can place
it straight into the hands of the Holy Father, it is difficult
for him to receive a message. But he must, I repeat again, receive
this message...............He must take one day of this year,
this year, not next year, this year, one day, and with all the
bishops of the world, he must consecrate Russia to My Immaculate
Heart.
It can be done, My children, with your prayers and your efforts.
Your Pope, he is a good man, but he is weak also, having human
frailties; and he has great undue pressures upon him. Help him,
My children, by writing, by trying to send through the blockade
that they have set up in front of him in Rome; send a message
of grace from Heaven to Holy Father Pope John Paul II. He must
consecrate Russia to My Immaculate Heart; or else Russia shall
go throughout the whole world, destroying nation upon nation,
even the United States and Canada...............Now, My children,
continue with your prayers. All the others cannot count but your
prayers this evening. And remember the Pope, as My Mother sought
to put in your mind, as though She was branding it in your conscience,
to get in touch with Pope John Paul II and ask him, plead with
him! - to please do what My Mother asked back at Fatima. Do
what She asked, otherwise the world will find itself ablaze.
JUNE 18, 1988 (MSG) - My child, I also have to tell you;
look up and see, and repeat what your see......Veronica: I see
a large crowd of people in Rome. No, it's not Rome, because I
can't see the....I know the city. Looks like it may be in Russia.
I'm not familiar, Blessed Mother, with Russia or the buildings.
Our Lady: You will understand, My child, because at this very
moment there is a dissident under the number five of communism
that is planning to kill the Pope. His words We hear are, "This
time we will not fail to destroy him!".............Please,
My children, pray for your Holy Father, the Pope. You must not
lose him, for the one who comes after him will destroy if he can,
he will attempt to destroy, I should say, My child and My children;
he will attempt to destroy Pope John Paul II..........My child,
I want to look up, and look far into the sky. What do you see?
.............Veronica: I see a group of people, talking outside
a building. The building looks like it may be in Russia. That's
the only place I saw spires like they have there. Now coming out
of this building are two sinister-looking men. They're looking
at shotguns. And they're also whispering. I can't hear what they're
saying, but they are mentioning the Pope. They keep repeating,
'the Pope,' Now both of them are laughing like they had accomplished
something bad; but they are laughing because they are demons!
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG) - My child and My children, there
is one thing I wish to bring to you this evening; that is the
word of Russia. You do not understand the great threat she is
to the world. I say 'she' because We have nothing else that exemplative
of explaining the necessity to convert Russia. Now My Mother in
the past has told you through countless earth-years of visits
upon earth how to do this, I repeat from My Mother Her words to
the world some time ago (and I believe, My child, you have been
a voice-box before and a means for Heaven to transport this message
to the world) that is, that the Holy Father in Rome, in unison
with all of the bishops of the world, must consecrate Russia to
the Immaculate Heart of My Mother. ......You will pray all for
your Holy Father, Pope John Paul, for there will be very soon
another attempt upon his life. Only you can save him now,
because, My children, in all factuality. We tell you: Without
your prayers you will lose him within the next year.
JUNE 17, 1989 (MSG) - The red horse is war! And war is
in the balance, next, My child. And what can you do about this?
This is My direction from Heaven, and We hope My children, that
you will get this out to the world. Unless the bishops and the
Holy Father in unity with all the bishops of the world, unless
they consecrate Russia to My Mother's Immaculate Heart, the world
will be doomed! Because Russia will continue to spread her errors
throughout the world, rising up wars and carnage and pestilence
and famine. Is this what you want, My children?...............Every
single soul upon earth that hears My voice this evening has an
obligation, for the sanctification of their own souls and the
souls of those they love, to listen to Me and follow the direction.
I wish that all who hear My words this evening will go forward
and besiege, if necessary the Holy Father and the bishops with
a request for this consecration of Russia. We do not mean the
world, My children, We mean Russia!
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - Listen, My child, and repeat after
Me: The Brown Bear of communism of red orientation, will seek
to devour the Holy Father, your Vicar the Pope, by assassination,
and place on the seat of Peter a communist puppet known by all
as the White Bear.............My child and My children of the
world, disaster lies ahead in Rome if this happens. Will you not,
in your goodness of heart, go forward and give this message to
the world. Approach your clergy. Write to Rome! Beg them to listen
before it is too late. Your Holy Father, the Pope, is in great
danger..........They cannot outwit the Eternal Father in Heaven.
He knows their hearts, and they will not succeed if you will act
upon this and keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout
the world for your Pope, the Holy Vicar in Rome.
OCTOBER 6, 1992 (MSG) - Veronica had Polaroid pictures
taken of her at the vigil grounds, while holding 3 blessed candles.
Something else appeared in the picture which had a profound meaning.
On the top, a woman with a head-covering (man dressed as a woman?)
pointing a gun, her arm extended and her finger on the trigger.
When you turn the photo slightly to the left, you will note 2
large "Ps," an "8" (in between the "Ps"),
and a "Y" (formed by the top of the left "P,"
the "8" and the full "P"" on the right.
The 2 "Ps" stand for: The Pope and prayer. The "8"
represents the priesthood or the Holy Eucharist. Our Lady symbolically
uses the last letters of the alphabet, "X,Y.Z," to denote
the end times.............The meaning now is quite evident. Unless
we pray (P), and pray hard, for the life and safety of John Paul
II (P,8), the satanic plans which are in the final stages of development
(Y) will achieve its cursed objective; the brutal and violent
end to the life of the beloved Vicar of Christ. ............My
child and My children, you will continue to pray for your Vicar
in Rome, Pope John Paul II. At this very moment, there is now
being held a conference in secret to the world for his extermination,
and to place upon the Seat of Peter the despot.
PRAYER
V O L
U M E I
JUNE 18, 1970 - You will have to suffer, My child. Cry
with Me, My child, for I have never stopped crying. Pray, pray
always because so many souls will be lost! Listen to Me! Pray,
please pray! There is hope in prayer! The darkness grows deeper.
I carry the Light...Much to suffer....Listen to Me! Pray! Pray!
Pray! Love Him....Love My Son! Do not hate My Son! .......Be not
slack in your prayers, My children, by following the pleasures
of this world's time for there is no measure of 'time' in Heaven!
A thousand years (our time) here on earth is as one day (Heaven's
time)! (vol I page 8)
JULY 1, 1970 - My Rosary will be the light of the world.
Prayer only can stop the man of perdition. Half of the world is
already in darkness. No man is beyond the reach of satan. Many
will perish in the engulfment. There is salvation in prayer. Turn
to My Son. Give Him your heart..............The strong must carry
the weak. Keep His Cross before you always. Prayer and sacrifice
will be your guide to the Light. Place not your trust in this
world, for it is your exile. Eternity is forever. The children
are the innocent victims! Pray for your children. My tears fall
on all mothers. Come to Me for I will comfort you! Pray! Pray
always, My children. There are many souls to be saved. I know
of a mother's broken heart that tears cannot mend. My Son will
comfort you. I bless you all, My children. Pray My Rosary daily.
(vol I page 10)
JULY 15, 1970 - Pray for My priests. They are led into
the darkness. Many hearts are hardened to the truth. There is
salvation in prayer. Many will be sacrificed in the engulfment.
Carry your cross, My children. All hearts must rise to Heaven
in prayer. (vol I page 11)
AUGUST 14, 1970 - This should be a most joyous occasion,
My children, but We look down and see thousands of slaughtered
innocents. We cry tears of anguish. The Father demands punishment.
We beg penance and reparation of you now! All loving hearts must
bear the burden of this sorrow, to pray for those on the road
to perdition, forever to be lost to Heaven. Pray! Never cease
your prayers, for many are at the brink of eternity, on the road
to eternal damnation. Thou shalt not destroy a creation of the
Most High! Repent! While there is still time. Look, My child,
on the punishment to be. The Chastisement, will be metered in
measure of the extensive infested nature of man's sin and his
disregard of all urgent admonitions and requests for immediate
reparation. ...........Build a wall, My children, a wall of prayer
to protect you from contamination's. Wear My Rosary. Never let
it be far from your hands. Satan will try to discard this chain
to salvation, your link to the Kingdom. .............But My Immaculate
Heart will triumph over all evil. The present strife is but a
symptom of the underlying sickness, the loss of soul. Prayer is
your beacon in the dark world. (vol I page 13)
AUGUST 21, 1970 - Do not be slack in your prayers, My children, by following the pleasures of this world's time, for there is no measure of "time" in Heaven. A thousand years (our time here on earth is as one day (in Heaven). The brightest stars in Heaven won their crowns through suffering.
...............Pray, pray, My children. Recover all souls from
Purgatory. Physical death is but the beginning of spiritual life.
I am the Mother of the world, come to Me and I will comfort you.
(vol I page 13)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1970 - Build a wall, My children, a wall of
prayer to protect you from the contamination! Wear My Rosary!
Never let it be far from your hand! Satan will seek to discard
this chain! It is the chain to salvation! It is your link to
the Kingdom! St. Joseph has been forgotten. Love Him! Pray to
St. Joseph for he will guide you on the path. The enemy is within
Holy Church! Satan will find many to create heresy with the loss
of the true faith! Resist the knife that seeks to cut Holy Church
asunder for My Immaculate Heart will triumph over all evil. The
present strife is but a symptom of the underlying sickness, the
loss of soul! Prayer is your beacon in the dark world! Sadly,
I say, My children, this glorious land has fallen to gain! Oh,
sorrow of sorrows for the fall of man! I will always be with you,
to save you! To save you! I bless you all, My children. (vol I
page 157)
OCTOBER 6, 1970 - I want a string of Rosaries across your
Land from coast to coast, a solid chain to keep out the enemy,
a sold chain of protection. Unite in prayer to keep out the enemy.
...........Realize the power in your hand with the Rosary, for
in your hands you hold the power of God. If you do not recognize
the Rosary, can you expect to be recognized by My Son? How much
can you expect? Why do you hide My Rosary? It was with a Mother's
living Heart that I chose to give you these pearls of Heaven that
you reject!...........Woe to all the dedicated who seek to remove
these from the little hands for their punishment will metered
in accordance to it!..............Why has sophisticated man cast
aside these tokens of My love? Those who remain true to My Rosary
will not be touched by the fires. Bather these treasures, My children,
for the time will come that you will not find them on the counters
of your stores. Pray your Rosary slowly, My children, not with
your lips but with your heart.......Resort not to arms. My children,
just use the Rosary as your weapon.....(vol I page 15)
If you are with Me, if you truly love Me and My Son, you will
help each one to alleviate Our sufferings with your prayers, for
a soul, a wandering lost soul is brought back with your Rosary.
Your prayers are sorely needed. .................My children,
We are always with you but you must think your way to Us. This
may be confusing at first but really quite simple, for every prayer
is a form of soul meditation through the thinking process. What
you hear within, is the Spirit within. What you see in vision,
is a temporary lifting of the veil that separate life in your
world and life in the Kingdom to come. My Son and I, through love
of the Father, rose without having to lift this veil. Science
will never compensate or penetrate the veil, no man will be greater
than his Creator. (vol I page 16)
NOVEMBER 1, 1970 - I have need to warn you, My children,
to prepare! Stay within yourself in the light of grace, for I
have often told you that these times are in the 'Times of Sorrow'.
While you live and battle in your life-time, remember those who
have gone before you, who thirst for your prayers to quench the
fires of desolation. They suffer in their temporary punishment.
.........I repeat again, live every earthly day in the spirit.
At this moment I cannot divulge the full plan of the Father. Prepare!
Prepare! Retire from a world that is now the kingdom of satan!
Gather your loved ones about you! Protect them with a Vigil of
Prayer, the Rosary. You are not alone in the battle. We send all
the graces necessary for your salvation. Redemption! Grace! Peace!
All for the asking! The Power of God reaches out to prayer! (vol
I page 17)
NOVEMBER 21, 1970 - The sorrows are before you! Yes, I
know why you cry My child, for you too know Our anguish. Our Theresa
placed the road before you, bring with her the love of the souls,
the thirst for souls, and now you must share with Us the torment
of knowledge of how many will be lost. Prayer and sacrifice alone,
can recover them. This I say to all My children. Without your
prayer and sacrifices many will be lost. (vol I page 17)
DECEMBER 24, 1970 - Veronica again saw the Eagle: The
demons had made a straight path up from hell. They are trying
to push the Eagles from behind. they are trying to push the Eagle
over the edge. I see a power, England, but I cannot fully understand
the involvement with satan. They pretend to be friends. They are
to be watched. It is a conspiracy. It is the uniting of the forces
to destroy the United States! They are doing their work well so
far...But Our Mother stresses the power of prayer to hold back
the darkness. These are desperate times. Do not be deceived by
the momentary cries of peace. I see the false prophets increasing
in number, cunning in their deceit, even to the Elect. (vol I
page 19)
DECEMBER 31, 1970 - How sad to see many dying in the pursuit
of revelry and worldly body pleasures! Drunkenness has always
been an abomination in the eyes of the Heavenly Father, and time
will never distort the Word of God! Time and custom never change
in the Eyes of the Father. I would have you know of all the abominations
taking place. We see consorts in sin destroying the sacredness
of the marriage bond with drink and mixed brain medication! What
horror....What constructive pursuit is there that seeks to destroy
the total personality of man, reducing him to the animal level
in emotions and actions!!! The heavy Hand of God will not fall
lightly on these offenders! Always remember, excesses weaken the
soul. Gluttons of worldly pleasures! Can you not see the sorrows,
the miseries of starving nations and the souls leaving the earth
untimely? Is this not time for full prayer? Have you so little
faith that you believe that your time is not limited? Cast not
your lot with satan now, for in His Mercy, Our Lord, the Eternal
Father must often look the other way when He calls many souls
into judgment! ............I repeat once again: Without sacrifice,
prayer and self-denial, you will not enter My Son's Kingdom!!!
The choice is yours to make now! My Son or the world! Remember
this My children, this world will pass you by, your soul will
eventually reach its judgment, but what will you harvest? This
will depend whether you store graces now for the future, or place
yourself on a completely worldly level of living for the present.
My first word in the New Year: PREPARE! (vol I page 21)
FEBRUARY 1, 1971 - I have tried to warn you, My children,
but My warnings have fallen on closed ears. I can no longer keep
the darkness from you! I beg you now to keep a constant vigil
of prayer. He is here now! Oh the sadness of hearts on this day.
How We cry in Heaven for the sadness ahead. He shall spread his
destruction all over the earth. The man of perdition is in your
country! ...............Wear your cross, My children, I cannot
caution you enough, to wear your Rosary about your neck. For no
one will be free from his entrance; he claims the unclean souls!
He seeks the souls of those destined for My Son's Kingdom! He
seeks to destroy, this evil man from hell. Listen to Me, My children,
he is walking your earth now! He has the powers of satan! He can
use the body of a man or a woman or a child! Watch! Beware! Ask
the Holy Spirit to allow your eyes to see! Keep a constant vigil
of prayer! Many will fall into the abyss. We weep for the souls
that will be lost.
He will proceed on into Egypt and Israel and bring Russia
from the North. Wake up to the Truth! His reign will be
longer than man expects. The interpretation of man has erred,
the time and one time and a half is in Heaven's time. The earthly
time is very much longer. Do not be frightened, My child, by the
sights sent to you for those are for your own protection. ..........
I caution you again! Keep your doors barred! It was not the Will
of God that forced this cross upon you, My children, for My Voice
hath cried to you through endless years. To repent, but you heeded
not My warnings! My travels have been world-wide, My tears shed
in every land. My Voice grew weak and now there will be the Great
Pause! During this time, My children, I can only impress on you
the necessity for constant prayer. Guard your doors well now,
against the enemy who walks the land. He has come to your locality
to try to destroy My work here. He knows that We plan to recover
many souls by Our vigil of prayer. He will use the clergy to stop
you, My child. Trust in the Majesty of My Son, for His Will, will
be done!..........Please, My children, join Us in Heaven send
your prayers up to Us! We stand and watch the great battle. ..........Satan
has opened the abyss many of his henchmen are among you, for every
knock on your door, evil knocks on your door. Guard your homes
well, let not those enter, if you value the salvation of your
souls. Guard your children well! Teach them the laws of God. Live
a life with Christ and you will be saved. Pray for those who reap
what they have sown! (vol I page 22)
FEBRUARY 11, 1971 - From now until the Plan is fulfilled,
I must stress that you keep resigned to a life of prayer and sacrifice,
for that is all that will save you. We still hope to gather Our
stray children and therefore, We reveal to you now, the secret
of the ages.......The true meaning of Mr. 666, known as the antichrist:
6 is for the 6 who are coming. 6 is for the 6 days of suffering.
6 is for the 6 who will be punished..........Man is wise but through
the ages the true meaning becomes lost. This, My child, We give
you. Watch, wait and pray! He is still in your Land! Safeguard
your home and your family as I have told you countless times before.
The danger will increase to the souls. ...........Repeat to all
this prayer: Jesus extend to us, in the light, of your infinite
knowledge, the power, through the Light, to understand the task
that lies ahead, for all of us who wish to be saved......How We
long to be able to spread words of cheerful vein, of happiness
and joy, but My children, how can one smile and laugh, when the
heart is crying. Many will be taken out of the world in the conflict
ahead, but do not despair, for with your prayers, even these may
enter the Kingdom of Heaven. ..............Pray, My children,
never cease your prayers, for that is the only step to take for
the recovery of souls. Not only those you love but those who no
longer have a soul caring enough to pray for them. (vol I page
23)
APRIL 3, 1971 - My Son has seen the defilement that evil
man has created. The penance will be severe. Few have heeded My
cries. I have wandered the world in tears. Who has sought to ease
My anguished Heart? Now you may look into your own heart and find
the answer of the days ahead, for you have made your choice. My
Son and I have begged you for atonement, for sacrifice, to deny
yourself these temporary pleasures of your earthly life. In many
places in many ways We have been cast aside. The burden of saving
all souls has fallen on those of true faith. There is still time
to gather the souls. Please, I beg of you to now spend every moment
aside from your necessary worldly duties and obligations in prayer
and sacrifice. It was not long ago that I cried this warning,
but it also went unheeded. My Son's Mercy knows no end but, what
shall We do with these young boys that are coming to Us unprepared!
It is too late now to spread this message for it's best advantage,
now I must beseech you, My children, to pray; keep your Rosary
with you, day and night, you must pray. (vol I page 25,26)
Be guided by the Holy Spirit that comes to you through the Eternal
Father. In the darkness He will guide those who keep Him in their
hearts. Our Father is the Lord High God, in Heaven. Defiled man
knows his father as the black prince of hell, and this father
of the dark abyss spreads destruction, fear, violence, hatred,
murder of innocent babies, hear Me now, and remember what I say,
you have brought the sword upon you by your own actions! For as
the Father gave you a free will to choose your road; if you sought
not the grace necessary to stay on the right road, it is because
there were too few prayers, to little who cared to save themselves
or you! ..........The prayers you give for atonement are applied
to the souls to purgatory, for you will need them, yes, these
souls, with you in the final battle. (vol I page 26)
APRIL 10, 1971 - We allow man to expose his true state
of soul by his own means, and as such would seek to stop the atonement
prayers. these who have fallen to the conquest of satan! Yes,
many have joined Us here at this sacred place blessed by the Father;
do they raise their hearts in prayer? Or to seek selfish entertainment
or self-gratification? Unless you reach out to help gather the
souls of all your brothers and sisters, you will not be counted
among those gathered during the destruction! Love is always in
giving! My child, care not for the judgment of mere man, but shoulder
your cross, keep the Words given to you by My Son in your heart,
for they will comfort you in your trials. (vol I page 26,27)
For the Rosaries sent to Us, the sacrifice of victim souls, victims
to His Merciful Love, the Eternal Father has bestowed a delay,
the rest will depend on the penance, the prayers, the sacrifices
that you will be willing to give! (vol I page 27)
MAY 19, 1971 - We are at war now, but the war of the spirits has far dire consequences that the human beings in worldly war combats! My Mother has given the plan for salvation countless times before. Will there only be counted a few in the final total? This will depend on prayer, works and efforts of love in action demonstrated by all remaining souls on this earth. I have chosen from this world many messengers to repeat Our cries, but they too will share the Way of the Cross. ..........
Oh, My Jesus, how well the darkness covers the land. We look upon
hate, greed, paganism and murder. The darkest of sins are being
committed! Guard your children from the unholy ray. Keep the monuments
(statues) in your home, keep the Rosary about your neck. These
were not given for decoration. We cannot bear the blasphemies
against Us much longer. We admonish you to save your soul and
the souls of your loved ones. We are always with you, just raise
your hearts in prayer to Us. Your prayers and sacrifices will
be needed for your priests.
Yes, they will be needed to safeguard those who represent Me in
My House (Church) for the man of perdition (anti-Christ) will
enter higher places to render discord among those who rule My
House on earth. Have pity for those (clergy) who will fall into
his trap. Only prayer and mortification of the senses can retrieve
one of these souls. No one will be free from the assaults to the
Church by the one called anti-Christ unless you keep Me with you
(Eucharist), not as an occasional visit but as a daily act of
love. Satan has placed his disciples in your schools, your government,
you ways of entertainment, you means of communication, all have
been infiltrated! You can readily see My children, how far he
has progressed to destroy. We are gathering Our armies from Heaven,
yes, We are watching and will join in the eventual combat for
My Mother's Heart will heal when We triumphantly remove the evil
one from among you!! (vol I page 27)
We don't wish to see one of Our children lost to Lucifer. He now
gives all God's children battle. There is such turmoil in the
world that We cannot come to you as often, Veronica, for We are
needed very badly in the battle of the spirits. We listen to all
who call Us. We will answer all who come to Us in belief, come
to Us, believe in Us, and you will be saved! I have asked you
to wear your Rosary to protect you from the evil that not enshrouds
the earth. Already those destined for My Kingdom know Me. We know
them! Those who have turned to Lucifer, who have turned their
backs on Us, We know them not! Soon, My child, iniquity will so
abound, that even many of the elect will be in fear to be charitable.
Yes, charity will grow cold. We have already impressed on you
the necessity for prayer. The power of prayer to chase him out.
If you do not listen, you too will walk into darkness. You must
not go around berating your brothers and sisters, you must pray
for them! Without prayer, you cannot fight satan! These are not
ordinary times, these are not ordinary days, no, if you read the
words left by the prophets, you will understand the Book of Life.
(Bible) (vol I page 28)
JUNE 17, 1971 - Your prayers are sorely needed for your
priests, your cardinals, your bishops. The heaviest attacks are
upon those with the most influence in My Son's House. Yes, there
are those who have fallen to satan. They will drag many other
souls to hell with them. We do not want...................Yes,
We do have hope, that your prayers, your understanding, your charity,
will bring back those who have gone astray. This can also be accomplished
by your example. Pray, My children, keep a constant vigil of prayer.
We will shower many graces on you all. We are always with you.
Remember, My children, wars are always a punishment for your sins.
(vol I page 29)
JULY 1, 1971 - There is great power in prayer. It can rescue
your brothers falling down into the bottomless pit. I can rescue
them for you. Oh, My children, must I tell you the deepest of
truths? Must I now, to save you, reveal the most heart rendering
of truths that many, yes, many will die in the great flame of
the Ball of Redemption! ...............I ask you for a constant
vigil of prayer, so that satan will not enter upon you. You must
now say when you arise, 'I will protect myself with the Shield
of the Immaculate Conception.' You will say before you enter your
bed which will not be a bed of security and comfort now, 'I protect
myself with the Shield of the Immaculate Conception,' for My children,
when you sleep he does not sleep. (vol I page 30)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1971 - My child, you will make My message
known to the world. We implore all true hearts to spread My message.
My words will be few, the darkness is deeper. I have just come
through the shadows. I have with Me, My child, three guardian
(angels) of My Son's House (Church). He (anti-Christ) the evil
one will not destroy My Son's House. Yes, there will be many martyrs
in the days ahead. All parents must rescue their children from
the evils of error! We advocate the instructions of your children
in the Faith. We do not want their teachers to be the adversary's
helpers, the followers of the agents of hell who do not recognize
the truth. You must know this truth of the evil that is about
you, and must fight this evil with prayer and sacrifice of your
worldly desires! Or you will not escape the Chastisement planned
by the Father! Unless you heed My words and guide My Church, unless
you erase the evidence of error in My Son's House, you will be
destroyed! Repeat: A house in darkness wears a band of death about
it. A Church in darkness wears a band of death about it...................
If you cast Me aside, who will help you? Who can save you? You
will gather now the prayers given to the blessed ones of the earth
of ages past (Saints and Prophets), the message of truth from
the old house. You will not follow the plan of the evil one (anti-Christ)
the destroyer of the truth. (vol I page 36)
OCTOBER 2, 1971 - We have given you your armor. Your defense
will be found there. You have your armor. Now you will keep a
constant vigil of prayer going in your country. It must be one
life of atonement, sacrifice, and prayer! The numbers left after
the conflagration will be counted in the few. The choice will
be given to every individual which road he will travel. Yes, there
are many in My Son's House who have fallen. Even those can be
saved with your prayers. The ones whom your prayers do not recover,
they will become members of satan's crew, for already he (satan)
has aligned them against those who will defend My Son's House!
We have asked your Holy Father for a great sacrifice. You, in
your resort to prayer will hold a balance of the sacrifice. (vol
I page 37)
NOVEMBER 1, 1971 - Prayer, sacrifice, atonement. We ask
little of you. All can be summed up in one word: Love. All parents
will guard their children's souls. All parents will be held responsible
for their children's souls. Pray for the Light that you may not
be led into the darkness. I have stressed the plan for your salvation
many times. You will act upon it now or fail! (vol I page 38)
Flee from the evil of the serpent that now runs across your land.
Accept not a drop of his venom because you are not strong enough
without the Light to reject it! Many who are destined for satan's
kingdom have chosen their path, My child. But, they too can be
saved with prayers.(vol I page 39)
NOVEMBER 20, 1971 - Pray for the light and you will receive
the understanding. Look for My Son, and you will be given the
way. You ask the future; the pages must turn but you can lessen
the suffering as you walk through the web of Our adversary, satan,
if you would but care, if you would set aside your luxuries and
body pleasures to pray and sacrifice in the days ahead, when you
will be forced to your knees!................Prayer, sacrifice
daily, an act of love, the reward far surpasses the temporary
pleasures in this earthworld of satan. You will send all the messages
to the bishops, they have been misled and they now hold the balance.
The red hat has fallen! The purple hat is being misled! Pray that
they may receive the light before too many souls are led down
the road to damnation; even those you can rescue by your prayers.
(vol I page 39)
DECEMBER 31, 1971 - Recognize the evil in your land that
is reaching into every family. Parents will be held responsible
for the guarding of the children's souls. Pray for the Light to
come to all your members. Yes, pray for your children who are
the true victims of the web of evil that enshrouds the whole earth
now. The example given in many homes is foul! We have asked you
to keep the statues to be a focal point for the mirror of the
soul. The impression upon young minds of Our true existence, that
many choose to call legends! Keep the pictures, the sacramentals
in your homes. Pray together as a loving family. Prepare the young
souls well, for as they go without the family door, it will stand
them well in the onslaughts of satan, so evident in excess about
them; this darkness that covers the world............You must
retire from the world of evil about you, as your station in life
will permit, adjusting to live the spiritual life. You must use
the sacramentals, prayer, the demons must run at the sound of
prayer!.................Confusion, confusion! All about Us We
see confusion and the conditioning of errors. Family prayer must
be instituted in the home. Without prayer you will walk the road
of error! Many prayers of reparation are needed for Our Vicar.
There is, My child, a plan to eliminate him. It is being developed
to remove him from Our House for one who is known as anti-Christ,
to reign, yes, this black leader is not black of color, but of
heart. He will bring much evil into My Son's House. (vol I page
41)
MARCH 24, 1972 - Your prayers for others can retroact and
give strength to those who are weak, for when you know the true
meaning of saving souls, you will use your prayers, your sacrifices,
your atonement for the worthy purpose of rescuing these wandering
souls. (vol I page 45)
APRIL 1, 1972 - Please remember Our Holy Father in your
prayers. We are 'buying' his time with us by our prayers and
sacrifices. Man cannot comprehend the ways and judgment of God
as it is not akin to man's. (vol I page 49)
OCTOBER 6, 1972 - A wise soul knows the true meaning of
saving. Prayer, sacrifice, atonement, are your measure for recovery.
There is much talk going upon the winds. Talk which is destructive
and not constructive. This We find in the Holy House of God. Better
they turn now, go down on their knees, and beg forgiveness for
their offenses against their God! Rank shall not spare the wicked.
Remember Luciel (satan). He was cast from the Eternal Kingdom!
All who turn their backs on the command of the Eternal Father
will join Luciel in his dark world! (vol I page 68)
FEBRUARY 1, 1973 - Prayer, atonement and sacrifice, a constant
vigil of prayer in your country; that is all the direction you
will need. You do not fight the war of the spirit with idle words
cast on the winds, bargaining for pieces of silver with souls;
seeking self-glory and worldly honors, temporary in your state
of life. You bargain your souls for your temporary existence and
lose eternity!! (vol I page 79)
MARCH 18, 1973 - We ask that all prayers continue in perpetuity.
A constant vigilance of prayer will go throughout the world. Your
world can no longer be saved by any means of man, for now man
stands in judgment before his God. (vol I page 86)
MARCH 24, 1973 - The forces of evil are gathered against
the young. Parents will be the anchors in their homes. Guard the
souls of your children, for they meet the agents of hell once
they step outside your doors. Prayer, and prayer alone, with the
graces gained in sacramentals and sacraments will be your fortification
against the agents of hell now loosed in great number upon your
earth. (vol I page 89)
MARCH 25, 1973 - The value of prayer has been taken from
your consciousness purposely. You will all return prayer to your
homes and the House of God. Bad example in the House of God has
set many souls onto the road to hell. (vol I page 91)
There must be kept a constant vigilance of prayer in your country
and throughout the world. The agents of hell are loosed in force
upon your world. Prayer can stop them. (vol I page 92)
MAY 30, 1973 - Prayer, atonement and sacrifice. Save yourselves,
save your souls and the souls of those you love. And if you have
the charity of heart for your brothers, you will offer your sacrifices
for their salvation, for many will be lost because they have no
one who cares to pray for them. The greatest weapon you have now
is prayer; you will use it. Man has man opportunities to make
atonement to his God, but he has become involved in a materialistic
world. (vol I page 104)
Veronica: Oh, Our Lady is giving a direction now. Our Lady says
that She would like you, when you're here, whether you know a
person or whether you don't....She requests that you say an Act
of Contrition and three Hail Mary's for a great indulgence will
be granted for the soul, the departed soul. That would be an Act
of Contrition and three Hail Mary's for a departed soul. Therefore,
they would be given a grace necessary for their repatriation into
Heaven. Our Lady said great indulgence will be given for the recitation
of the Act of contrition and three Hail Mary's. (vol I page 105)
JUNE 8, 1973 - Remember, My child, I bestow upon all who
come to My sacred grounds, the power to bring back and rescue
from satan their brothers and sisters. You must not forget the
power of prayer to the Father. Ask in the name of My Son, and
He cannot refuse you. Continue, My children, your prayers of atonement.
(vol I page 106)
JUNE 16, 1973 - Instruct your children well in the salvation
of their souls. Know that when they leave beyond the doors of
your home, they will be subject to satan. Teach them, My children,
parents, the value of prayer. Prayer must be returned to you homes.
Your example must be one of purity. Your example must be one of
fortitude. And most of all, My children, remember: You must show
and practice love for the Father. (vol I page 110)
JULY 1, 1973 - Satan now walks among you, he brings many
agents to set confusion and delusion throughout the world. This
confusion is not only in your lay life, but is found in the House
of God. You can only set the House of God and the world to right
by prayer, penance, heavy penance, now, and sacrifice. (vol I
page 112)
AUGUST 5, 1973 - One day of your earthly week time will
be given to the Father in prayer and meditation. It is the day
of the Lord. Know now that this is but a small penance and sacrifice
for what lies ahead. I promise all who follow My direction to
be protected during these days, as I shelter them beneath My blue
mantle. (vol I page 120)
DECEMBER 7, 1973 - You will keep a constant vigilance of
prayer in your country and throughout the world. Only in this
way will the Father lessen the extent of the coming Warning upon
your city, your country and the world. (vol I page 147)
DECEMBER 31, 1973 - The offenses to the Father have made
the great saints of Heaven cry out for retribution. It is you
Mother who begs for your reprieve. The greatest teacher among
mankind now, My children, will be prayer and your example. (vol
I page 156)
FEBRUARY 1, 1974 - There are many agents of hell, now upon
earth, and they have entered into the House of My Son. Prayer,
atonement, and sacrifice; this has been given to you as instruction
from the Father. You must return prayer to your homes, to your
schools, and make it a way of life for your children. Many parents
will suffer for their laxity in the discipline of their children.
Do not depend on false teachers to bring you the truth. A house
in darkness wears a band of death about it. A Church in darkness
wears a band of death about it. (vol I page 159)
FEBRUARY 10, 1974 - And now, we will recite, at the direction
of Our Lady, the Litany to Saint Joseph. Now, Our Lady requests
that this Litany be recited in reparation for many priests who
are in Purgatory. Our Lady said that the priests in Purgatory
are forgotten, because many have forgotten them, because they
think, as priests, that they don't need prayers, that they enter
immediately into Heaven. Our Lady said you must understand that
the priest is still human, subject to sin and error. However,
during the consecration of the Host, and during the time of the
confessional, when he gives absolution, he is Jesus impersonified,
he is the representative of Jesus. Though he be subject to error,
he is still a human being, and therefore, he can enter into hell
or Purgatory. There are many now who have been forgotten. Therefore,
we will recite the Litany to St. Joseph, for these priests who
have not received enough prayers and sacrifices to release them
from Purgatory. Many have been there, Our Lady said, for many,
many years. Therefore, we will recite the litany now. (vol I page
168)
APRIL 6, 1974 - The prayers, the acts of sacrifice made
by the few on earth, I can only say 'few' My child, for they do
not balance the numbers and multitudes upon earth! These prayers
had won a reprieve for mankind. However, it is in the plan of
the Father that the cleansing begins. Man has not recognized the
warnings given by the Father. Therefore, they will become more
severe in nature. (vol page 183)
MAY 22, 1974 - You must tell My children upon earth that
they must not cease their prayers for their friends, their brothers,
their sisters who are waiting with much anguish to be released
from purgatory. (vol I page 199)
JUNE 15, 1974 - We here in Heaven are much grieved, because
We see mankind turning from the facts of the supernatural, the
light of the Father. They're calling in a manner that makes Our
hearts heavy, for they're reaching out and calling in a manner
that has not been directed by the Father from Heaven. They set
upon themselves great delusion and great aberrations from the
truth. Pray much, My children, that you do not fall into these
errors. (vol I page 214)
No, My children, unless you pray, not invoking the spirits, but
to pray as the words were given to you; you shall not have the
understanding in the light. Do not be confounded and confused.
The prayers from Heaven are simple Do not go searching for the
sensational, for you will start your prayers always with: "Our
Father who art in Heaven", not blablablablabla, that We hear,
My child, coming up here. The misinterpretation of the word 'tongues'!
Do you know what you read in the Book of Life? Man has put a very
twisted interpretation; lalablala, to Us, My children, that is
what it sounds like. .................You do not seek the light
in the right places. Pray for the light but always pray. Our Father,
who art in Heaven, so that you do not invoke the father of all
liars, the prince of darkness, satan! For many of you now are
calling upon satan, therefore, pray for the light; wear your sacramentals,
tried and true. (vol I page 217)
JUNE 18, 1974 - The greatest power you have at this time,
My children, is to pray. Satan and his agents cannot stay where
there is prayer. Chase them out now. Chase them out with a vigilance
of prayer in your home and in your churches, and throughout the
world. (vol I page 221)
JULY 25, 1974 - The greatest weapon you will have, My child,
is prayers. A constant vigilance of prayer, throughout your world
and your country. You will go forward, My child, and My children,
protected by My blue mantle, a covering of light with the cross
of My Son in your right hand and the beads of prayer in your left.
For in your hands then, you will hold the greatest weapon in this
war of the spirits, prayer, atonement and sacrifice, My children.
The balance is heavily now to the left. Watch and pray much. The
hourglass is running low. (vol I page 236)
AUGUST 14, 1974 - You, in your mercy and love of heart,
can reclaim many of those who at this moment of earth-time are
on the road to darkness and Lucifer. Your examples, your prayers
and your works, prayers without works, My children, they will
never succeed in recovering souls, they must be worked together,
prayers and work. Example: Do not waste your time in frivolous
occupation. Work for the Father and your reward will be great.
Work for Lucifer and you will receive his reward and forever you
shall cry the tears of the damned. (vol I page 243)
AUGUST 21, 1974 - Yes, without prayer and penance, there
will be a great war; a war of such magnitude that without the
intervention of the Father not many shall be left to inhabit the
world of earth! (vol I page 247)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1974 - No, My child, satan cannot read your
mind. This is a great grace. He can only follow your plans by
expression and outward action. Learn to communicate by the spirit,
My child. Think your way to Us. Pray interiorly. Many words multiplied
from the mouth, do not necessarily bring you great graces. Better
a few that come from the heart than constant prattle without meaning.
(vol I page 262)
OCTOBER 6, 1974 - The prayers of a few have held back the
just punishment but the sands of the hourglass are slowly running
out. How foolish mankind can be with his reasoning and judgment.
He is quick to judge his fellow man. Better that he pray for the
light. (vol I page 280)
NOVEMBER 20, 1974 - See, My child, the start of destruction
in My Son's House. Talk, talk, talk to destruction. More prayer,
My children! Pray yourselves out of the darkness. Idle talk will
get you nowhere. Pray, My children! Return to your life of discipline.
You have forgotten the value of prayer. Satan cannot stay where
there is prayer, nor can his agents. (vol I page 292)
You will bar your doors. You will understand the meaning of My
words and follow them through. Whenever you have a decision to
make, I repeat, you will pray once, pray again, and then you will
be given the light of understanding. (vol I page 295)
NOVEMBER 23, 1974 - If you, My child, find your road filled
with thorns, know that you are truly traveling the way of the
cross. You cannot expect any less a lot than My Son received when
He brought the Message to the world. For if you were bringing
a message known to the world you would be accepted. But since
you bring a message of the spirit, those not of the spirit will
reject you, My child. Pray for them, for the power of prayer is
great. Pray much for your rulers, your government, your schools
and My Son's houses throughout the world. A House, a Church in
darkness wears a band of death about it. Many will close their
doors when they succumb to the darkness. Pray, My child, a constant
vigilance of prayer. Prayer, atonement, and sacrifice, My voice
cries, for the time grows short. The sands are running out, My
child. (vol I page 300)
DECEMBER 28, 1974 - A house in darkness wears a band of
death about it! The family that will pray together, will stay
together, My child. Pray a constant vigilance in your homes and
you will make the demons flee. They cannot stay in a house of
prayer. You will understand, My child, why satan has entered My
Son's House on earth; the Church! Because there was not enough
prayer! Man talks, idly talks of worldly matters when he should
concentrate on the spiritual...........It is only because, My
child, there are not enough prayers that mankind is going fast
toward a great war! It is only because there are not enough prayers
that there is discord and broken homes! It is only because there
are not enough prayers that many children have places the knives
in their parents hearts. (vol I page 316)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - With your prayers, My child and My
children, even the clergy will receive the strength to fight for
the truth; to fight for My Son, to fight for the souls! (vol I
page 322)
FEBRUARY 1, 1975 - Unless the prayers continue, My child,
there will be great atrocities committed in your City. Murders,
fornication, abominations in the House of God, brother against
brother, sister against sister, mother against children, so great
will be the evil entrenched in the hearts of man! (vol I page
328)
MARCH 18, 1975 - You will pray much for your clergy. You
will pray much for your government leaders. And parents, you will
adopt a rigid and strict rule in your families for you are now
holding the balance for the salvation of your children's souls.
Your sacrifice now will bring you gladness of heart for at the
end of penance, there is great joy. Yes, My child, I say penance,
for to remain in the light in your dark world will be great penance
to mankind! However, there is always the joy in knowledge that
Eternity in the Kingdom of Light is your reward. (vol I page 342)
MARCH 22, 1975 - Mankind has substituted a prayerful life
for one of gaiety and debauchery! For this he shall reap the reward
of his sin. (vol I page 347)
MAY 17, 1975 - You will well understand the value of prayer
in the days ahead. Know that satan seeks to stop the prayers.
Prayer is your greatest weapon, My children, now against the forces
of evil that are set upon you. (vol I page 359)
Pray a constant vigilance of prayer, My children. Prayer is your
greatest weapon against the forces of darkness, the forces of
evil. Have pity upon your brothers and sisters who have fallen
into darkness. (vol I page 361)
They must be taught to pray more. Prayer is no longer a way of
life. Prayer must be returned to the homes, and the churches of
the world, and the schools, and the public and private lives of
all the children of God, my brothers and sisters. If you pray
more, you will learn to love prayer. It will become a way of life
that you cannot turn from, for it will give you something that
you have never found in the world. (vol I page 365)
JUNE 5, 1975 - You must now pray, do much penance, and
work with great haste to gather Our straying sheep. Have pity
and pray for your shepherds who have fallen into the darkness.
Even your prayers are necessary, My children, to recover them.
Do not be lost in the fallacy that because they are shepherds
they cannot fall to the errors of the flesh. The attacks of satan
are great upon them. So few pray for Our clergy. (vol I page 374)
In the time left before your Chastisement, which will come as
an eventuality, you will spend your time now in gathering your
prayers and graces for those who do not have he strength of spirit
to acquire these graces for their own salvation. (vol I page 380)
JULY 15, 1975 - Pray for your dedicated, your priests,
and your sisters. Many have gone fast into darkness of the spirit
for they have chosen to follow the modes of the world. Bring them
quickly the Message from Heaven. We do not wish one child to be
lost to Us. (vol I page 384)
JUNE 18, 1975 - All prayers must come not from the lips
but from the heart. Do not rush your supplications, for I assure
you, My children, there is no time beyond the veil. The time you
give now for the salvation of your souls and the souls for whom
you love and pray, will be gathered beyond the veil and your joy
will be two-fold when you meet and rejoice in the Kingdom of Heaven
together. (vol I page 380)
JULY 15, 1975 - A life of prayer and meditation shall give
you the necessary graces that will keep you from falling error.
(vol I page 384)
AUGUST 5, 1975 - You will practice a life of more prayer,
My child, and My children. Vocal prayer and interior prayer. Use
prayer for it causes great despair to Our adversary, satan, he
must flee at the sound of prayer.............I have asked you
many times to pray for the conversion of the nation, Russia. Unless
there are more prayers and acts of sacrifice, Russia shall send
her errors throughout the world causing great suffering and loss
of Faith. ...........I have asked you to pray for the conversion
of Russia. Have you not prayed for her as a nation, for the people
who are led in darkness! As these errors are being sent throughout
your world, pray a constant vigilance of prayer. The leaders of
your country are slowly succumbing to the evil. The example among
your leaders is poor. (vol I page 393)
Pray much for your neighbors, your brothers and your sisters.
Your prayers have great power. It is of great charity to pray,
My children, for many have prayed for you all, or you would not
be here among those counted upon this sacred mission. (vol I page
395)
AUGUST 14, 1975 - Many prayers are needed for your clergy!
But for your prayers, many shall be lost to the Kingdom of God.
It is a fallacy, My children, that those who wear he garment of
teacher of the Light shall enter into the Eternal Kingdom. They
are still human, My children, and must make their way with the
cross, also. They need your prayers, as well as your children
and neighbors. It is an act of charity of heart to pray for your
pastors, My children. (vol I page 399)
AUGUST 21, 1975 - The balance is leaning heavily to the
left. There is no way to fight this balance except through chastisement.
Man set himself upon his own road and it is in the Merciful Heart
of the Father that He brings him back through suffering. The forces
of evil are gathered now to take over a major position in your
world, and in My Church. However, the balance is in prayer...........Those
who are in the Light will rise to this occasion and fight the
evil by prayer, penance, acts of sacrifice, and action. Prayers
without works cannot be constructive at this time. You world is
fast proceeding on a course to destruction! (vol I page 405)
MAY 29, 1976 - My child, tell all to act as good example
in My Son's House. Women must wear a head covering in the holy
places and in prayer. It is not because of custom; it is because
the angels demand proper deportment during the Holy Sacrifice.
(vol I page 493)
The greatest weapon against evil now is prayer and sacrifice.
The world must do great penance now to escape the terrible Chastisement.
(vol I page 494)
JUNE 18, 1976 - My children, when you pray, you are rescuing
your brothers and sisters, you must not use what could be termed
as lip service. You must pray with purpose and feeling from the
heart. Each word will be prayed slowly, with understanding and
reason, like this: Our Father....Who art in Heaven...... hallowed
be Thy name....Thy Kingdom come....Thy Will be done.....on earth....as
it is in Heaven....(vol I page 507)
JULY 24, 1976 - My children, do not fall for the error;
do not fall into error; you must pray for the light before you
read the Scriptures. Many have set themselves to change, renovate,
and place deceit in the lines written by the prophets. (vol I
page 512)
The message from Heaven shall go throughout your world, and then
shall come the end. There will be a baptism of fire set upon mankind.
How soon, My children? it all depends upon you and your actions.
Prayer must be joined with action, works, good deeds of atonement.
(vol I page 514)
AUGUST 14, 1976 - Men without God, your atheists
of your world, shall be awakened forcefully. Pray, My
children, for those who appear lost, for one prayer can bring
them back from the brink. The power, My children, of prayer is
great. (vol I page 522)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976 - Pray, O My children, pray a constant
vigilance of prayer for your Holy Father, Pope Paul, in Rome.
Prayers can move even the hardest of souls to repentance. Were
it not for the prayers of many, many would fall fast into the
abyss of eternal damnation. For those who have received graces
in abundance, much is expected of them, My children. (vol I page
529)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1976 - You will all keep a constant vigilance
of prayer going throughout your country and the world. If you
recognize, if you accept the truth and the knowledge of the supernatural,
you will know the great power of prayer to dispense the demons.
I give you this lesson of reality, My children, the demons cannot
stay with the sound of prayer ringing in the air. (vol I page
534)
OCTOBER 2, 1976 - O My children, it truly rains teardrops
from Heaven. How I have begged you to pray for your bishops. how
I have begged you to pray for the leaders of your government.
Too few pray for them. too few even pray for members of their
own household. And why? Because the damnable machine of satan,
television, has been used now to destroy the solidarity of a home.
It has come in and separated communication between the individuals
of the home. (vol I page 543)
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - Pray, My children, a constant vigilance
of prayer for your pastors. Do not abandon My Son's Church, but
stay and fight by example and prayers. The power of prayer is
great. The demons cannot remain where there is a sound of prayer
cascading and resounding across the air. (vol I page 548)
Pray a constant vigilance of prayer, My children. Many graces
are being extended to you through My Mother. Accept them with
generosity; share them with your brothers and sisters who are
less fortunate. Many souls that would otherwise fall into hell
and eternal damnation have been saved because of the thousands
of prayers that have been rising to Heaven for their salvation.
Only, My children, in the time of your great reward in Heaven
will you understand fully how great was your mission upon earth.
............Do not allow your minds to be clouded by satan. Keep
a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout your country and
all of the countries of the world. Pray for those who have received
the greatest of crosses, those who no longer can receive Me, My
children, in the Eucharist. (vol I page 551)
NOVEMBER 20, 1976 - Pray a constant vigilance of prayer,
My children. They do not always have to be written words, but
pray from your heart; open up your heart to My Son. Ask all of
the angels of Heaven to guide you and be at your side during these
desperate days of darkness of spirit.. (vol I page 556)
NOVEMBER 22, 1976 - I repeat the direction of My Mother
to you many times, that prayers without works shall be fruitless,
My children. Good example and words spoken out with wisdom given
to you from the Holy Spirit shall help gather My sheep in these
dark days. (vol I page 562)
Remember these poor souls, My children, those who have been abandoned
and those who no longer have anyone upon earth to pray for them.
Unless you offer your sacrifices and prayers, many will have to
serve long terms of waiting before entering the Kingdom. There
are many, My child, without your prayers who will be here, in
this place of suffering, unto the end of earth's time. (vol I
page 564)
DECEMBER 7, 1976 - My children, prayers without works hold
no strength. For all who are given great graces in the light,
much is expected of them. You must not tire in your mission, My
children. (vol I page 566)
DECEMBER 24, 1976 - Your God is long suffering and merciful,
but you, as a degenerate generation, you try My patience! But
for the pleading of your Mother, My Mother, the Mediatrix from
God to man, you would have already received your just Chastisement.
But for the few prayers that rise as a balance to Heaven, you
would already see death and destruction in your country and many
of the countries throughout your world. (vol I page 572)
DECEMBER 28, 1976 - Pray a constant vigilance of prayer.
Retain, nourish and preserve your Faith, My children. Do not succumb
to the wiles of satan. Satan who will act within the bodies of
any man, woman, or child that has given himself to sin..(vol I
page 576)
V O L U
M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977 - You will all keep a constant vigilance
of prayer, for without prayer, you cannot have sight, without
prayer, you will be unable to recognize the signs of your times.
(vol II page 21)
FEBRUARY 10, 1977 - Each day of your life must begin with
prayer and end with prayer. Accept all of the graces that are
given to you freely. Do not reject the means given to you through
your sacraments. (vol II page 25)
MARCH 18, 1977 - As I warned you in the past and you did
not listen, unless you prayed more, did more penance, sacrificed,
communism would go throughout your world, ravishing nations, destroying
your Faith, entering into the highest places of My Son's House.
Can you deny what is happening now in your world? Remove the blindness
from your eyes and look! Come out of the darkness before it is
too late, for a House in darkness wears a band of death about
it! (vol II page 27)
MAY 14, 1977 - My children, the power of prayer is great,
for prayer transcends your soul into the realm of Heaven. I speak
in simple language to you to raise your voices to Heaven in silent
prayer. Seek and you will find the way. I repeat: No man shall
be lost except of his own free will. (vol II page 41)
MAY 30, 1977 - The world's leaders in the nations of earth
have received a great part of he counsel of My Mother. You must
all keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout your
country and the world. Prayer can only now melt the hearts of
those who have closed their ears. My child, continue on your mission.
Your prayers shall bring many back before the tribulation. (vol
II page 52)
JUNE 4, 1977 - My children upon earth, you must always
be aware of temptation and the possibility of falling into the
web of evil spun by satan to ensnare you. Pray for your brothers
and sisters in Canada, My children. But for less prayers you,
too, may have ensnared in this trap. (vol II page 54)
As you progress upon your road to sanctity the attacks from satan
will become greater. My children, you must never let down your
guard, but you must constantly pray a vigilance of prayer. It
is sad, My children, that you have been put to this great trial
in your mission, but you must learn by it. I repeat: You will
pray for your brothers and sisters in Canada. (vol I page 55)
JUNE 16, 1977 - Are you ready now to come over the veil?
I assure you, My children, many shall pass over the veil before
you count on your one hand. Prepare your household, I shout anew!
Keep the foundation of Faith in the hearts of your family. The
family that will pray together will stay together. (vol II page
59)
JUNE 18, 1976 - My children, console the bleeding heart
of My Mother; console Her by accepting Her words of counsel and
acting upon them. Prayer is the greatest weapon now you have against
the forces of evil loosed upon your world. It is the battle of
all battles; satan against the Spirit of life and light. Satan
has now mobilized the full forces and fury of hell against you!
My Mother has prepared you well if you accepted Her counsel. (vol
II page 62)
JULY 15, 1977 - My children, you must keep a constant vigilance
of prayer going throughout your country, the nations of earth,
the world. Prayer has great strength against the demons that are
loosed in force now upon your world. The agents of 666 have entered
into all of the medias of the world; the agents of 666 are now
in Rome. The Holy Father, your Holy Father, Pope Paul VI, he suffers
much because of the disobedience and the Judas's about him. (vol
II page 65)
AUGUST 5, 1977 - The road to hell has been paved often
by good intentions. Remember this, My children, without prayer
you cannot remain in the light. You must always direct your talks,
your thoughts to the Eternal Father and the personage of Heaven
to protect you and guide you. Seek not the counsel of man when
it concerns the state of your immortal soul. For what man is there
left upon earth who will counsel you in truth? Very few, My children.
For the pastors, the shepherds shall stand before My Son and shall
they say that their teaching has been pure in His sight? He shall
cast them out as the vermin and the vipers they have become, for
many have sold their souls to get to the head. (vol II page 72)
Prayer is the greatest force now given to mankind to stop the
evil. Pray a constant vigilance of prayer in your homes. Public
prayer and private prayer is deemed necessary now. (vol II page
74)
AUGUST 13, 1977 - Prayer, My children, is all that you
have now. You have waited too long. The evil has accelerated now,
and your children are surely the victims of your laxity, your
permissiveness. You condoned immorality. You condoned sexuality.
You made no effort to fight the evils that have corrupted your
schools, and your governments, and now your homes. (vol II page
76)
I cry bitter tears of sadness for your country, America the beautiful,
that shall now be visited by the angel of death. My children,
prayer is the only measure now left. (vol II page 77)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1977 - We depend now, My children, on the
few to set themselves now to rescue those who are in the deepest
darkness. Prayer is the most powerful force in the light now,
My children. It is a form of penance; it is a form of begging
for the repatriation of souls. .....Pray a constant vigilance
of prayer. Keep this chain of prayer going throughout your country
and the world. (vol II page 88)
NOVEMBER 1, 1977 - My children, you must protest the offenses
being committed against the divinity of My Son. Prayer is a good
weapon, but unless you act, and pray too, My children, you proceed
nowhere. You become lax, indifferent; apathy set in. Each and
every individual of conscionable age shall be tested. (vol II
page 96)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977 - Yes, My children, Our hearts are torn
as We see many are falling into the abyss, lost forever to Heaven.
Pray for your priests who have not received enough prayers to
enlighten their hearts. Pray for your brothers and sisters; extend
your charity to the sinner. Do not condemn him but pray for him.
(vol II page 103)
NOVEMBER 21, 1977 - You must all remember, My children,
to pray more, whether it be meditating, or group prayer. Many
of the sacramentals given to mankind have been given for this
very age that you live in now. You are all now passing through
the latter days - the time written of and spoken of by your prophets.
(vol II page 106)
DECEMBER 7, 1977 - Prayer is the greatest weapon you will
have now against satan, My children. I have wandered to and fro,
through countless earth-years of time, crying for prayer, atonement,
sacrifice! The Eternal Father has a balance that leans heavily
now to the left. It is not a good sign, My children. (vol II
page 108)
MARCH 15, 1978 - .It is well, children of the earth, that
you spend now your time in prayer and penance. Many shall die
soon. Many shall die without the opportunity to make amends for
the salvation of his soul. Pray a constant vigilance of prayer
now, going throughout your world and your country.(vol II page
126)
APRIL 1, 1978 - My children, pray constantly a vigil of
prayer. I ask you not to do just lip service, My children, but
pray from your hearts. The words do not have to be studied but
from your hearts. Ask and you shall receive. Believe and you will
receive many graces. (vol II page 138)
MAY 30, 1978 - The agents of hell will make it their pursuit
to take this knowledge of the supernatural from you. You must
safeguard your Faith and keep the Faith in the hearts of your
children and your family members. Pray, My children, it does not
have to be words of a special nature. Just pray from your heart.
Speak to Me as your Mother. Speak to My Son, for He will aid you.
The power of prayer is great, My children. Nothing is impossible
to God the Father in Heaven in the Trinity! (vol II page 156)
MAY 20, 1978 - Pray, My children, for your priests, your
bishops, your cardinals. Too few pray for them, for in their awe
and their knowledge they believed in the past, My children, that
these Hierarchy had a special passport to Heaven. No, My children,
they have a human nature also, and human frailties, and must be
protected by prayer, and penance and sacrifice of others also,
for them, in your charity of heart. In your love of human nature
that We hear man speaking of as he falls into the errors of modernism
and humanism; True love lies in prayers and sacrifice for an individual,
for when you come over the veil, I assure you, it is only love
and prayers that can follow you. (vol II page 151)
JUNE 10, 1978 - My child, warn the world, My children of
the light, that they must always be prudent and not be presumptuous
and slacken in their prayer life, for satan is most powerful with
his armies of ogres. Yes, My child, you will understand that Lucifer
never sleeps. The spirit never rests. (vol II page 163)
JULY 25, 1978 - This has come about only because arrogance
and pride has entered upon them. They no longer pray but have
succumbed to the errors of humanism and modernism. Holiness must
be returned to the vocation. And this can only be acquired by
restoring prayer in My Son's House and especially the prayer life
that is so lacking now in the clergy. (vol II page 173)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1978 - Yes, My children, I cannot bring you
erroneous discourse with words of happiness and cheer at this
time. I can only give you the facts of what has taken place. The
present conditions in the world, in My Son's Church, and in Rome,
have been well promoted by Lucifer and his agents. His power is
great, but you can always break his rule with prayer and penance................My
children, prayer, atonement and sacrifice I beg of you! For many
shall die upon earth. Death shall become commonplace. Already
there will be loosed upon you an epidemic of great proportion,
taking many lives. (vol II page 186)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1978 - Being of free will in the image of
the Eternal Father, mankind has refuted and refused his redemption.
Mankind has returned civilization to its corrosive state of the
past when it was necessary to destroy mankind in his sin in order
to bring forth another flowering generation with promise for growth
without the necessity for chastisement. However the prayers of
the few have held back the Warning and great Chastisement. .............My
children, communication through prayer must be continuous in the
life of every man and woman and child! You must transcend in prayer
to the Eternal Kingdom. The Eternal Father is much dismayed at
the increasing sin of man. (vol II page 195)
OCTOBER 6, 1978 - My children, go forward in the days ahead
with patience, with hope, with charity in your heart. Pray constantly.
The prayers do not have to be typed nor read, but speak from your
heart in the spirit. (vol II page 199)
DECEMBER 7, 1978 - My children and My child, I ask you
to retain in your homes the prayers given for reason to mankind
through My Son's priests. If necessary you will write them down,
like in the ABC's of your children's. You will write the prayers
and have them memorized by your children, to retain the Faith
in their hearts. The Acts of Faith, Hope and Charity were given
for reason and must not be discarded. (vol II page 209)
MAY 23, 1979 - My children, I repeat: You will keep a constant
vigilance of prayer going throughout your country and all of the
countries of the world. It will be in the knowledge of the Eternal
Father that soon a great trial will be set upon your country,
My child, the United States. Those who pray and try, I say it
is a difficult time for all, My children, but those who will try
and make an earnest effort for the salvation of their souls and
the souls of all about them will be rewarded by being shielded
from the great catastrophe that will soon come upon you. (vol
II page 214)
JUNE 9, 1979 - My children, I beg of you as your Mother,
as a Mother of love and understanding, that you in charity of
heart pray for your Bishops, pray for your Cardinals and all clergy,
who are under now attack by 666, satan and the forces of hell.
Wherever there is darkness so will the agents of hell gather.
Know by this, My children, the predominance of sin will give you
a signal that onto this position and location have gathered the
agents of hell. (vol II page 223)
JUNE 18, 1979 - You cannot condone what is wrong, but you
must act to correct it. Prayer is one of the greatest weapons
now for mankind to use against the forces of darkness that cover
now and enshroud the whole world. (vol II page 228)
JULY 14, 1979 - An Act of Contrition will also be recited
daily for the dying, My child; an Act of Contrition and three
Hail Mary's for the daily who will die each day.(vol II page 232)
AUGUST 4, 1979 - You will all keep a constant vigilance
of prayer going throughout your world. Do not expect to receive
from your Hierarchy counsel to pray, counsel to do penance, counsel
to make amends to your God. Because too few peoples in the light
have prayed for your clergy, many of them have given themselves
over to a life of worldly pursuits and pleasure. (vol II page
237)
OCTOBER 6, 1979 - Pray constantly; your heart and minds
must be with Heaven. Do not give yourselves over to the world
which is controlled now by Lucifer and his agents. It is a narrow
road to the Kingdom of Heaven, and too few remain upon it. Once
you leave, it is most difficult to return. Prayer has the greatest
strength of appeal in Heaven. Your prayers will not go unanswered.
Ask and you shall receive; seek, and you shall find the way; believe,
and you will be given the way. (vol II page 260)
NOVEMBER 24, 1979 - You will continue now, My child, by
directing all to pray a constant vigilance of prayer for your
clergy, for the Bishop of Rome, your Pope, and for all mankind,
for all poor sinners whose minds have been poisoned by satan.
(vol II page 265)
JUNE 18, 1980 - Continue the prayers of atonement, the
Rosary. Wear your scapular; it was given for great reason. One
day you all will understand. Pray, My children; a constant vigilance
of prayer must go throughout your country and the world. Prayer
now is the only means with action for saving the souls in your
country and your countrymen, for destruction is about to come
upon you. (vol II page 273)
MAY 30, 1981 - Understand: There is a Heaven, there is
a purgatory, and, sadly, Lucifer's kingdom of hell. Man will take
this from your minds. In that manner will you fall faster. Therefore,
you will continue reading and rereading the counsel of My Mother
in the many visits to you upon earth. For soon you will be reduced
to praying, and prayers alone; and then your test of faith will
come. (vol II page 283)
MARCH 26, 1983 - My child and My children, there is one
fact that must be brought forward to all mankind. I know that
many have tried to make up for the void that the bishops of your
country and the world have created when they will not go about
and consecrate the major offender to the world now, Russia; will
not consecrate Russia to the, both the Immaculate Hearts, My Son
and I, We wish to save you from this destruction. And there is
only one way that you can; that's through penance and prayer.
Your future which is coming to a point of what you call the end
of an era your future is upon you. (vol II page 382)
MAY 21, 1983 - Man has become a depraved creature living
not by his knowledge of his Creator, his God, but living through
the pleasures of the flesh, neither caring nor wanting to know
and understand what is happening at this time to all mankind.
(vol II page 385)
MAY 21, 1983 - I can only assure you, My child and My children,
that prayers can move mountains, and, therefore prayer can stay
the execution of your Vicar. Pray a constant vigil of prayer.
Keep these prayers going as link to link, bead to bead, throughout
the world for your Vicar. .............All Heaven is alerted to
the days ahead. 666 is among you in full force, so you must wear
your sacramentals and protect your children from the forces of
evil when they leave your homes. You must teach them at home the
truth of your Bible and the prayers that are being lost to mankind.
(vol II page 386)
OCTOBER 1, 1983 - There is only one recourse to hold back
the flames, My child, that you have viewed; that is an outpouring
to Heaven of penance and prayer, and sacrifice. Your world is
heading towards a cataclysm of massive proportion. Many parents
shall lose their sons and shall cry to Heaven, "Why, oh why,
has this come upon our world?" (vol II page 395)
Think, My children, before it is too late. Many of you who hear
My words will not be ready. I say, not be ready! Unless you protect
yourselves by a constant vigilance of prayer, you will not be
ready when you are called unexpectedly. Many shall be removed
from the earth very soon, and many will not be ready. (vol II
page 396)
APRIL 14, 1984 - Pray, My children, a constant vigilance
of prayer. Pray that the murders cease, the murder of the unborn.
Pray that Heaven will accept all of your prayers and your penance's
done with great heart for your priests, the clergy. Pray a constant
vigilance of prayer, like a worldwide chain of prayers. You will
take your Rosary and make it the leading point of your life. He
who does not pray the Rosary once, at least once, in their homes,
he who refuses to accept penance when given it to them by the
Eternal Father, not knowing perhaps the value of penance, he you
must pray for. There are so many prayers to be given, but We do
not have enough, My children, to pray. (vol II page 403)
JUNE 18, 1984 - My child and My children, and especially
My children of the United States of America, you are surrounded
now by reconnaissance planes and, also, you are surrounded by
missiles. Know that your world is not safe any longer. This must
be told to you, My children, to try to waken you up to the fact
that now is the time to pray, that now is the time to do penance.
Do not put it off for another day, for many of you shall not see
the dawn of that day. (vol II page 406)
JUNE 30, 1984 - My child and My children, you must pray
constantly. The sound of prayer is like cymbals clanging through
their ears, and they must run and flee from you. So you must keep
a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout your life. Your
station in life means nothing. You must pray, for you will lose
everything, your station, your home, your children, your lives.
(vol II page 410)
M E S
S A G E S
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG) - My child, you must know in your
own area and throughout the world about Catholic nations; they
have forfeited another key to Heaven when they discard the prayers
that Heaven has given to them to guard their souls and the souls
of their families and their children. These are all parts of the
armor of Heaven in the fight with the antichrist forces. My child
and My children, I must constantly warn you and repeat over and
over the necessity for wearing the Brown Scapular and also praying
My beads of prayer, the Rosary. You must keep the Rosary going
link to link, prayer to prayer, throughout your country, Canada,
and the world, My child. ..........There is one grain left only
in the hourglass. I know this bereaves you, My child, for Me to
have to bring such dire tidings, but My heart is also heavy; for
there are many who are coming to Us over the veil, and what can
We do with them, as Our tears fall with their pleadings? However,
as has been ordained by the Eternal Father, where there has been
no repentance upon earth, that soul must be rejected. Or will
there be mercy for that soul, My child and My children, through
your prayers for the dead, that they be given a short or long
term in purgatory?
My child and My children I do not have to tell you that the knowledge
of hell and purgatory has been slowly corrupted, cut apart, and
cut asunder from the Church. My child and My children, you are
all My children, I judge you not by color or race, and I do not
judge you by your creed; however, should the knowledge of the
One True Church be given to you, and the way to Heaven along the
narrow road be given to you, you will follow it or you will be
rejected. There are, My children, so many poor souls now that
are languishing in purgatory; some will be there till the end
of time. Will you not succor them, My children, will you not pray
for them and shorten their time in this place of dark suffering?...........My
child and My children, pray constantly a vigil of prayer going
throughout your world and the earth, for the little time that
is being allotted to mankind.
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, this
could be an occasion of great joy, My coming to you. But the fate
of humanity and the world lies in the hands and the hearts of
the faithful. Without your prayers and your acts of penance, you
cannot save your Pope, and Our son, your Vicar. I will say, in
My Mother's heart, from My Mother's heart to you, that your Vicar
will soon meet with an enemy, who comes as an angel of light to
him, but is an enemy of My Son's Church, and all of My Son's churches
throughout the world. We choose, My child, to call them the House
of God, because it is a home, a refuge, for all of Our children
who suffer, and are brought to naught by modern science. In this
way We hope that modern science will accept the supernatural,
but they rather would cast it aside, My child and My children.
............I say unto you, all who wish to be saved must at this
time be apart from the world. They can live in the world, but
they cannot be a part of it. That you will ponder over, My children,
and you will understand. Sometimes, I understand that you have
difficulty in understanding the symbolism, and the manner in which
My Son brings His Message to you. But just remember, nothing is
hidden from you. All you will do when you become befuddled, My
children, all you will do is pray to the Holy Spirit, the Holy
Ghost; or pray directly to the Eternal Father, and ask Him to
enlighten you as to the day's woes that come upon you.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, I
wish that you all keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout
the world, your country, the United States and Canada. I warn
you again that Russia plans an attack upon the United States.
..........My child and My children, you may ask your priests for
knowledge of the stories coming from the old, elderly fathers
of My Son's Church, but can they tell you the truth now that their
seminaries have become polluted with errors? Mothers cry to Me;
I hear all of their prayers, prayers to Heaven to save their children.
And where can they find the knowledge of the truth to teach them?
That will depend now upon an earnest mother and father, and discipline.
Children are like soft flowers that must be nourished so that
their stalks will grow; and their faces, the purity of their faces,
shall rise toward Heaven and be nourished with the fruits of life.
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - My child, you must comfort those
who cry and weep for their lost children. There will be many other
mothers who shall suffer the horrible crimes against their children.
All is coming to pass because of the sins of the older generation.
Those who should know better are so enshrined in their own love
of the material that they cannot even visualize what they are
doing to their children. In order for your children to be saved,
My parents, you must keep a constant vigilance of prayer going
throughout your home, and those homes of your immediate families.
One good example can save a dozen, My children. ...........My
child, the earthquakes will increase now. There will be one in
New York. Now, My child, I tell you this to prepare. You are allowed,
My child, to experience all that mankind can suffer. How well
you listened to Us when We told you to place on your shelves cans
of food, jars of water, blankets. You found it very cold, My child,
without heat and without light, and without any form of recreation
other than to pray. And that was God's way of letting the world
know that they will be on their knees; and one of these days they
will be praying, for many the first time in many years. But why,
My children, must We allow all these disasters to happen to you,
and have to bring you to your knees in prayer? Can you not listen,
and can you not seek for the truth, all who call themselves atheists,
and those who have half-hearted interest in religion at all? They
call it a thing of the past. It is not a thing of the past, but
it is a means for your salvation; accept it and you will be saved;
reject it and you will be lost.
I repeat again, the earthquakes will increase in volume. California
shall be struck. New York shall be struck. As I told you once
before, there will be earthquakes in places that have never known
a quake. It will startle them and frighten them, but will they
come to their knees? Few will, My child, because I can tell you
this; they will not have the time to make amends; that is the
sad part, My child and My children................I tell you as
a Messenger from Heaven, I, too, My child, was just an innocent
child growing up in a family enlightened by God. I knew My position
upon earth, and I went forth to try to save you, My children;
and in My sacrifice there was salvation. I am asking you all now,
for the time left to your country and the world, to pray a constant
vigilance of prayer going throughout your world, link to link,
Father to Father. And the Hail Mary's shall be one of glory to
My Mother, and not will Her name be disturbed again, as though
it were a tombstone laid to rest. ........I have one more discourse
with you, My child, that is that you must go forward and demand
that the prayers be returned to the schools. In that manner, We
can approach the children, and return them to their rightful place
in the reign of God.
My child, I want you to do all you can to foster the return of
morality and morality to the medias; and, also, to those you love;
your neighbors, your children. And do not be affrighted or flee
from the sinner, for he, too, can be saved by your effort and
your prayers. As this child was born, so he must return; a simple
child, to the Eternal Father. If you remember, My child, the lessons
from Theresa; yes, St. Theresa, you will remember that it is a
simple way to Heaven; if you accept the Eternal Father into your
heart, you will always be His children of love. .............I
ask that the world continues to make Rosaries, and send the prayers,
link to link, throughout the world. For I still promise, that
if you will listen to My directions, given through My Son, in
the Father and the Holy Spirit; I promise to do all that I can,
My children, to save your lives upon earth; and, also, if you
must come across the veil, to save you from eternal damnation
through the Scapular and the Rosary. Pray, My children, all a
constant vigilance of prayer; that is all you have now, for the
enemy has been allowed to come into your homes.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - St. Michael: Veronica, my child,
announce to the world that the end approaches for your most illustrious
President of the United States, and, also, your Pope, John Paul
II.................I know, my child, Veronica, that this has affrighted
you, but it is most frightening to know that we cannot get enough
peoples upon earth to pray and assist the Holy Father in his day
of suffering. Yes, my child and my children, tell the world immediately
that the Holy Father suffers greatly for he too, has been given
insight in visions to know what lies ahead for him. But he is
willing to suffer all for the salvation of souls and the good
of the Holy Church. ............It is the will of the Father that
all men be saved. But you must understand this, My child and My
children: You have all been given a free will. I repeat: The road
to Heaven is narrow, and so few are finding it. The road to hell
is wide, and thousands are falling into hell every day. The road
to purgatory is also narrow, and there are many who have been
there since the beginning of creation, because they have no one
to pray for them.
You will all keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout
your world and all the nations of the earth. Because if you do
not, all the nations of the world shall cry. You have been given
minor warnings with hurricanes, and all kinds of earth disturbances,
with drought; with everything, My child, that should have alerted
mankind, but did not. What are they waiting for? The Ball of Redemption?............And
remember, My children, no sin shall ever be condoned or rationalized
upon, for sin means hell, or purgatory. No matter how much man
has cast aside his knowledge of the existence of hell, and purgatory,
remember, My children, one day, in your heart, you will meet one,
it is inevitable in every life, that you meet one who is approaching
his end, and he will scream for mercy. In pity, will you pray
for his soul because you do not wish to see him in hell, as Our
Lady does not wish to see him in hell.
You will pray constantly, My children. The prayers can reach Heaven
in short time, and perhaps can stop the next tribulation. This
is called a tribulation what will come upon you next. It will
be of an earth force again. However, with your prayers, and your
guarding of your homes, as We have always told you to, with the
crucifixes, you can escape with little damage, or none at all.
It will be as though the angel of death has passed by your home.
To some it will seem like a miracle, but to others it's just an
accepted part of life. For they will repeat: We are doing as the
Eternal Father has told us, and we are following the directions
of Our Blessed Mother, as She stood before us so many times, and
said, 'I am Mary, Help of Mothers. I love all My children, and
as such I will stand beside them, not wishing that one shall fall
into hell. ...............Pray for your clergy, for the bishops
are misguided. Pray for your cardinals, for some will fall into
hell. Pray for all mankind, for prayers are never wasted. If you
have any prayers left, My children, in your full day of praying,
give some to those in purgatory. There is such dire need for prayers
for those in purgatory who have no one on earth to pray for them.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG) - You see, My children, satan always
says; to divide is to conquer. But I do not want to see the world
in chaos, and a Third World War. That is why, My child, I brought
you here this evening, though I knew that your strength was waning
by this afternoon. There is only one recourse for mankind now
to avoid a Third World War, that is more prayer, more penance,
and more sacrifice for sinners. Those who are keeping the laws
of the Eternal Father must remember that they have been given
a special grace from the Father, and have an obligation to seek
out the souls who have not received this grace. Bring them the
light; show them the way. For they are wandering, and they can
be seduced in nature by others who are not in the light. Your
example, My children, is very important. .............There will
be in your country, the United States of America, a similar disaster
as in Russia. Know that this can be avoided if you pray more for
your leaders. For in their haste to build up armaments, they deceive
the world in saying that these armaments are being really cut
down or discarded. No, My children, they are being stored, and
added to day by day. ............You will keep a constant vigilance
of prayer going throughout your nation and the world. So few now
are reading Our messages from Heaven. They think that they have
found the solution, but they must remember this, that satan is
loosed upon earth now with all the demons of hell, and they will
do everything within their power to fight the plan of Heaven,
for the redemption of mankind. Redemption, grace, and peace will
only come to man when he returns to his God.
Pray for all sinners. Pray for those who run the governments of
the world. And above all, remember to pray for the Holy Father,
Pope John Paul II, in Rome, for his time is growing short. ...........My
child and My children, many punishments have gone by unnoticed,
and many more shall be given. I say this with a heavy heart, because
daily the prayers of the multitudes reach Us, asking forgiveness
for those who have sinned. My child and My children, I must tell
you that they have a free will and conscience. ...........I know
that all who hear My voice now and read this Message are doing
all they can to restore the earth to what the Eternal Father calls
a bit of normalcy. For the world has gone crazy with sin. Is that
not true, My child? Sin has become a way of life among many. Now
I ask you, as children of God, all who hear My voice, to continue
a constant vigilance of prayer, penance, and sacrifice. Many more
disasters are heading for your country, the United States, and
the world.
JUNE 18, 1986 (MSG) - And if you think you have seen carnage
now already in the Church, the worst is yet to come, unless you
follow the rules, given by My Mother many years ago, of prayer,
atonement, and sacrifice. By your example you may be able to save
others. For soon there will come upon you the great Chastisement.
It comes in two parts, My child and My children: The Third World
War and, also, the Ball of Redemption. These can no longer be
delayed. For the good seem to go about their way, perhaps pride
fully. We do not seek to accuse or place a stigma on any, but
some may pride fully sit back and let others go forth and make
these sacrifices and prayers and penance. Because they have become
smug, or because they have not the grace to understand, that once
you receive this grace much is expected of you. You must even
work harder to save your brothers and sisters.
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 (MSG) - Yes, My child, the evil is accelerating.
In fact I understand, from hearing My children in their prayers,
that it boggles their minds how the evil continues to accelerate,
as we pray and do penance and seek for the repatriation of souls
upon earth. We have extended the time far beyond what the Eternal
Father wishes, My children. But it is those who are good that
must not slacken in their pace to save their brothers and sisters.
...........Yes, My child, there is much that I have not told you
or the world. But there are other seers throughout the world at
this time. And I promise you, My child, through all the excessive
suffering that you are doing, and as you offer it up to the priesthood,
you are gathering some souls for Heaven. Remember, My child, and
you will find your suffering much easier to take if you will remember
that each pain and each sorrow means that you will offer it up
for the priesthood. The prayers that you have conducted for the
priesthood on the Sundays of your years upon earth shall be counted
at the time when all of you shall go over the veil. Then you will
rejoice with all Heaven for the number of priestly souls that
you have brought back to the fold.
Now, My child, I wish that you will say a full Act of Contrition,
for it has been forgotten in many of My Son's churches, His House
upon earth...............O My God, I'm heartily sorry for having
offended Thee. And I confess to all my sins, because I dread the
loss of Heaven and the pains of hell. But, most of all, because
I love Thee, my God, Who art all good and deserving of all my
love. I firmly resolve, with the help of Thy grace, to confess
my sins, to do penance, and to amend my life. Amen.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG) - My child and My children, how happy
and joyful I am this day for the many Rosaries that have ascended
to Heaven from among you. I know that all hearts rose, also, with
the prayers. How many shall be used to save those in purgatory,
you will find out in due ............Our Lady: My child, do you
wish to repeat what We had between Us of your mission? Veronica:
Of it will save souls, I will. Our Lady: Well then, My child,
repeat what I have asked you.........Veronica: I must accept my
sufferings and offer it for the priesthood. There are not many
prayers rising to Heaven for the priesthood, for many believe
that the priesthood has a special passport to Heaven. ................Our
Lady: My child, I have to tell you in all truth, that there are
many priests who have gone to hell because too few prayed for
them, and they did not accept the road to penance, dedication
and truth. .....................Now, My children, you will all
continue with your prayers of atonement. They are sorely needed.
We find great happiness in the millions, the thousands, the hundreds,
any number or prayers that was said today by all of those throughout
the world. Link to link the Rosary went, which makes Our hearts
light. However, shall this be a permanent thing, or shall it pass,
as all things of Heaven have, into a darkness?
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG) - My child and My children, how wonderful
it is to see you all here this evening. It lightens My heavy heart.
I cannot say this evening that My tears fall on you as I did in
1970, because with your persistence in coming this evening (and
I know that many of My children had to sacrifice to come here
this evening) with your persistence you have lightened Our hearts,
and with your prayers and acts of atonement, you have, also, lightened
the hearts of those in purgatory. For I promise on My next visit
to purgatory, I will be taking out one thousand five hundred souls,
whom you have saved, My children. Just the people I am looking
at now, all throughout the grounds; your prayers have saved that
many souls this evening...........Now, My child, I ask for the
good of all humanity, that they approach Pope Paul by letter,
by ear, by mail, any way possible, by human means and supernatural
means of prayer, to turn back from the present course of appeasement
with Russia. For Russia has one thing in mind; that is, to take
over the United States, Canada, and all nations of the world................My
child, you can well understand that they have been doing well
lately. That is because, though We cry for prayers, atonement
and sacrifice, and the First Saturdays, which I've asked of you
since Fatima; they have not been acceded to.
My child, I wish as penance for the world now, that you ask them
to daily repeat the Acts of Faith, Hope and Charity. I ask that
all pray with you at this time the Acts of Faith, Hope and Charity..........................Now,
My children, My Mother has given you the way to peace. It is a
way of prayer, atonement and sacrifice. You must love your brothers.
It is a faction to say that you must hate the sin, but love the
sinner. I have heard that, My children, from many lips upon earth,
but they really don't understand the meaning of love. We hear
the word 'love,' 'love' being expounded throughout the world,
and as they cry for love and peace and happiness, it evades them.
And why? Because they have taken a wide road, and made it wider,
as they ran from the
You will all keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout
your nation and the world. Pray that the world does not descend
upon you in the form of the Bear. For he is roaming throughout
the world, and gradually the nations are falling. He has a plan
for the capitulation of the United States and Canada. A bit of
this, My child and My children, was given to you by My Mother.
The rest shall be told to you in due time..........Now, My children,
I want you all to make a firm Act of Contrition, for those who
die in the outer world about you. And Act of Contrition for all
those who are unable to say it, for themselves.
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG) - When I came to Fatima many years
ago, I knew that communism would go throughout the world destroying
many nations and attacking My Son's Church. Therefore, I made
a promise that if the Pope, the Pope of those days and the Pope
today, would unite and pray for the consecration of Russia. I
do not mean the world, My children; I mean Russia, Russia, the
scourge of mankind. You will pray for Russia. One day must be
allotted in which Pope John Paul II and, also, all the bishops
of the world must unite on one day, I repeat, and pray for Russia;
or Russia will continue to be the scourge from God. Russia will
continue to go throughout the world annihilating people and places
and countries.
My child and My children, prayer has not become a way of life
for many. That is why communism has got such a foothold in your
country and in other countries of the world. The prayers given
to you in your childhood will be remembered always, I know, My
children; but there are those who have not received these prayers
in their schools, for prayer has been outlawed in many areas of
your country and the world. It took but a few without faith to
bring down the flag, for even your country's flag is being defiled,
My children. I speak both of the United States and Canada, for
when the great Tribulation falls upon them, they will have to
hold each other up; for they cannot escape through the waters
to get help. They will not escape through the skies, but the number
of dead will be counted in the millions..........My child and
My children, keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout
your nation and the nations of the world. You do not know how
close you are to being one of the nations to be annihilated. I
speak this of the United States of America, because they are being
deluded by Russia. Russia has in armaments six times the number
of missiles that we store. While they say they deploy them, and
take them out of existence-that, is not true. They are increasing
and increasing; for they have only one thought in mind-that is
to take over the whole world.
My child and My children, do not be affrighted by this, for there
is still time to stop them. But you must do that now! You must
get first in touch with the Holy Father, Pope John Paul II. Now
this will be most difficult, because he has many agents who work
with him that are not in the light. They are in his Secretarial
Department-the Secretariat. They do not tell him of his messages.
It is difficult-unless you can place it straight into the hands
of the Holy Father-it is difficult for him to receive a message.
But he must, I repeat again, receive this message. ........He
must take one day of this year-this year, not next year, this
year-one day with all the bishops of the world, he must consecrate
Russia to My Immaculate Heart. .............It can be done, My
children, with your prayers and your efforts. Your Pope, he is
a good man, but he is weak also, having human frailties; and he
has great undue pressures upon him. Help him, My children, by
writing, by trying to send through the blockade that they have
set up in front of him in Rome; send a message of grace from Heaven
to Holy Father Pope John Paul II. He must consecrate Russia to
My Immaculate Heart; or else Russia shall go throughout the whole
world, destroying nation upon nation, even the United States and
Canada.
Now, My children, continue with your prayers. All the others cannot
count but your prayers this evening. And remember the Pope, as
My Mother sought to put in your mind, as though She was branding
it in your conscience, to get in touch with Pope John Paul II
and ask him, plead with him! - to please do what My Mother asked
back at Fatima. Do what She asked, otherwise the world will
find itself ablaze.
JUNE 18, 1988 (MSG) - Veronica: I see a terrible globe;
it looks like a globe of fire. It's frightening! It's now bouncing
around, like it has no control; as though it's not in a general
place to be. It has bounced off another, what looks like a comet,
and has actually destroyed the comet to the left. ................This
one will be destroyed; for mankind has listened but has not followed
a schedule, as We would say, placed upon mankind by Heaven, a
schedule for prayers and repentance. This has not been done to
the satisfaction of the Eternal Father. All must get down on their
knees, and beg for repentance of mankind. It is mankind's balance.............You
do not have to weep at night for all the sinners of the world.
Many have been saved because of the prayers, My children. There
were many in purgatory that had no way to get out of purgatory
without your prayers. When you do this, My children, you gain
many graces also for yourselves.
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG) - That is what makes My heart ache,
My child. That is one of the reasons Theresa is crying constantly
when she looks into the convents and sees what is going on. Many
now believe in abortion, the murders of the children; and many
have committed this act upon themselves.................You ask,
My child, how could this happen to those with a vocation? How
can they ever seek an abortion, no matter what the cause? I will
tell you, My child; it is because they have given themselves over
to immodesty. They have also given up their lives of prayer. They
seek the pleasures of the world. They cannot be condemned at this
time, My child, because there are too few that pray for the clergy
and the nuns. They need your prayers, all the Rosaries that can
be said for their repatriation. ...........The Warning will soon
be upon mankind. You ask Me, My child, can it be stopped? Only
by prayers and sacrifice shall it be held back, but the time is
long overdue. If it was not for My Mother Who steadily holds Her
hand upon mine in sorrow, I would let My hand fall and the Warning
come upon mankind. It is not to be asked for, because you know
it is coming, My children. It is to be prayed against, for there
will be those who will die in this Warning.
My child and My children, pray a constant vigilance of prayer.
Keep this going throughout the United States and all of the nations
of the world, for there is little time left. Soon, in the plans
of the Eternal Father, He shall set forth and allow to come upon
mankind a great money disaster. In this way it will prove to you
that the disaster back in the 1920's, My children, was as nothing
compared to what will happen now. I talk of a great depression
coming upon mankind. This is well planned by those in control
and should hit your country, the United states, and Canada within
the next two years. ...............Can this be stopped, My child?
Anything can be if we can reach the people in time. However, I
am not optimistic, My child, at the murders and the two men in
particular that are now over here in the United States and using
expressions like 'casing the places.' That, My child, means to
look and see and report.
OCTOBER 6, 1988 (MSG) - Repeat after Me, My child, the
words given on the Mount. This is the way you must pray to the
Eternal Father: Our Father, Who art in Heaven, Hallowed by Thy
name; Thy Kingdom come, Thy will be done, On earth as it in Heaven.
Give us this day our daily bread, and forgive us our trespasses,
As we forgive those who trespass against us; and lead us not into
temptation. but deliver us from all evil. Amen...................Now
I asked you to say that prayer because it soon will be forgotten
upon earth. The Modernists seek to remove it now from the books
in the schools. You, My child, will see that this prayer to the
Eternal Father is printed up, and given out to all the children
within your means. .........And one more payer must not be forgotten.
But our Modernists are casting is aside. Repeat this, My child:
an Act of Contrition: O, my God, I am heartily sorry for having
offended Thee, and I confess to all my sins, because I dread the
loss of Heaven and the pains of hell; but most of all because
I love Thee, my God, Who are all good and deserving of all my
love. I firmly resolve, with the help of Thy grace, to confess
my sins, to do penance, and to amend my life. Amen.
You see, My child, that also will be cast from the books this
coming year. The children are being taught unity, but world unity.
The world is striving and fast heading for a one-world religion,
and also a one-world government. But this will not be a godly
government; it will be one of communistic nature. ................Remember,
My children, a constant vigilance of prayer. Use no excuses to
relieve your family of this obligation to the Eternal Father.
And remember again, My children, the two prayers that makes the
heart rise to Heaven. Teach your children, for they will not be
taught any longer in the schools. ...........My child and My children,
I repeat as My Son has just said to you, that you must keep a
constant vigilance of prayer going throughout the world and your
nation. Your nation - all the eyes of the world are upon your
nation - but We also watch as they try to fly high into the heavens.
Were as much effort put into bringing God the Father to the world,
I am sure, My children, much of the evil of the world would disappear.
This, of course, is beyond doing, for man has now a proud status
- one in which he finds himself king of the world. And for honor,
and glory, and money, man will sell his soul. Many have sold their
souls to get to the head. ................My child and My children,
I call to you now and say again; a constant vigilance of prayer
must be made throughout the world - not just the United States
and Canada, but throughout the world. And this can only be done
and done rightly if you follow the directions from Heaven given
to you in the past years.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG) - Another area that shall be shaken
will be California, My child. There is a great split in the earth
that is widening. This is not generally being given to you in
your news tabloids. They are trying to lull you to complacency.
We have given you the road away from these disasters; and that
road is only guided by prayers, penance, and atonement. ..............We
have asked you to pray for sinners; for you who have been given
the grace to come upon these sacred grounds, you must go forward
and try to save your brothers and sisters. I say brothers and
sisters, My child and my children, because you are all brothers
and sisters as your were created by the Eternal Father. Due to
man's humility in the beginning, except, My child, for the sin
of Adam and Eve, the world was not in such great chaos. Life was
far simpler. As man goes forward and tries to seek all of the
earth's paradise by way of fortunes and gold and silver, they
have sold their souls to get to the head. ..........My children,
I beg of you, as your Mother, do not leave My Son's Church. Do
not allow the rodents to come in and burrow and underground My
Son's Church. You can save it if you will only pray more. Pray
for sinners, that they will seek the light and be given the knowledge
of the errors of their ways, so that they can turn back before
it is too late. ...............You will all pray for your Holy
Father, Pope John Paul, for there will be very soon another attempt
upon his life. Only you can save him now, because, My children,
in all factuality, We tell you: Without your prayers you will
lose him within the next year.
JUNE 17, 1989 - There are so many errors now abounding
that it seems almost hopeless to recover those who have lost their
faith. Many have left My Church upon earth, and this disagrees
with the heavenly plan to save all mankind. ...............I become
agitated, My child, when speaking of this, because the fault lies
mainly with My clergy. The sheep are wandering now, and so few
have taken to prayer to save them. The prayer life of the clergy
has almost become nil. That means, My child, that they must return
to meditation and constant prayer, or much more shall happen to
the earth...........There will be pestilence anew. There will
be earthquakes in many places. The present ones have been nothing
compared to what will happen next. There will be a great earthquake
in the Los Angeles area, and also New York. I told you this before,
My children and My child, but I must repeat to you: Many prayers
are needed now, for the balance is most uneasy. ..........Remember,
My child and My children, no matter how rough the road gets, you
will stay within your parish church. And by good example and many
prayers you will bring the priesthood back into the light. Many
have lost their way because there are so few who pray for them.
Remember, My children, to pray for your clergy, for they are human
also and subject to error, mistakes, influence, and sometimes
pure evil. Pray for your priests daily, My children.
OCTOBER 2, 1989 (MSG) - Many prayers are needed for the
clergy. Won't you, My children, help them? For many are lost;
they are on the road to perdition. Please help them. I ask you
as your Mother, in your merciful hearts, for My Son and the good
of His Church, pray for your priests, your cardinals, and bishops.
JUNE 18, 1990 (MSG) - Repeat again, My children, to those
hardened hearts and deaf ears that will not listen, no matter
what. They must be then attacked by prayer. They have to be-prayers
so numerous that I would advise that the Rosary be upped in every
home. Parents, your children-please, have them pray!
OCTOBER 2, 1990 (MSG) - I come to you as a Protectress
of Peace. Unless you repent of your abortions, the murders of
the unborn, and return to lives of prayer and contemplation of
the mysteries of the Eternal Father, given by writings; the Bible,
the Book of life and love, I cannot save you from the conflagration
that lies ahead............Prayer, penance, and atonement. My
tears fall upon all mankind. Will you not solace Me, My children?
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - My child and My children, you will
keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout your world,
because, I repeat again, near the throne of the Eternal Father,
He views a ball so immense, so beyond all man's speculation, that
it will destroy over three-quarters of the earth. It is in your
atmosphere. It has been noticed by few, but the few seek not to
bring fear to the hearts of mankind. They do not know that it
is the Eternal Father who will guide that Ball. .................Pray
for poor sinners who are falling into hell now as numerous as
the raindrops or the snow fall upon earth. Hell is overflowing,
and hell is eternal. I weep for these poor souls, for they had
too few who prayed for them..................Please, I ask you
mothers, monitor your children's lives. Do not be an escapist,
running from home and finding pleasures of the world. Bring a
prayer life back to your children before it is too late. You will
be held accountable for the fall of the souls of the children.
Therefore, I ask parents throughout the world, with love, and
good leadership in the household, your children will not fall
as prey to satan.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG) - Mothers and fathers, how often have
I counseled you to protect your children in these days. You will
find that many of those that you entrust to teach your children
are bringing them into a world of unrealistic atheism. Already,
My child, it saddens My heart to know that you are not, as a nation,
allowed any longer to pray in your schools. ..............You
see, My children, as long as there is someone praying the Rosary
in your country, We will be here to guide you. But accept Our
counsel now. Do not wait until it is too late. America the beautiful
will fall! ..........So I ask you, My children, to keep a constant
vigilance of prayer going throughout your world and through your
churches and even if you have to approach your pastors................Many
pastors have fallen away from the truth, and they are like black
sheep now among the white sheep. However, I say to you, prayer
can overrule all evil. Keep a constant vigilance of prayer going
throughout your country and the world. It is the only resort now
that you have against the evil.
JUNE 18, 1993 (MSG) - My child and My children, We have
asked you on numerous occasions to pray for the clergy. They do
not have a special passport from Heaven. They fight the influence
of satan and his agents upon earth, but they need your prayers.........I
ask of you all to pray for your parish priests. Temptation is
great upon them; however, they are being put to the test by the
Eternal Father, ad all who are rotten will fall..........The prayer
life of the clergy has fallen. Unless they return to prayer and
sacrifice, give up the worldly cravings of mankind, and agree
to a life of piety and dedication and fortitude, even while under
attack; you will get nowhere, My clergy, by following the modes
of the world. You must lead a disciplined life and give to Our
children of the earth the knowledge of Heaven, hell, and purgatory........Your
country, the United States, has been graced, but your country
has fallen from the pedestal that she had been placed on by mankind.
Spirituality has been cast aside. Prayer life has fallen, even
in the convents.............My child and My children, I ask you
all from the mercy of your hearts to pray for your clergy. They
are human and as such, they can fall into error and sin. Unless
you pray for them many more shall be in the hell you have seen,
My child.
PRAYERS, POEM
(vol I page 7) Introduction
Blessed Mother be my guide
Be here always by my side.
Take me through this world of sorrow.
Show me there's a bright tomorrow.
Faithful and True (vol I page 7)
You look at your soul -
lost its sparkle and zim,
And you can't figure out
How old satan got in.
You check your reserves,
Got to line up those graces
To rescue you fast
From those dark, hidden places!
You shine up your armor
To fight once anew,
For our dear Holy Father
Cast aside by the few.
Your eyes are on Heaven
Your words are a prayer
To join the vast army
Of the folks who still "care."
We'll raise up a banner
Called Faithful and True."
And show the whole world
What a true love can do!
JUNE 18, 1970 - Then Our Lady told Veronica to repeat the
Message given to her some time back: (vol I page 8)
All hearts must ascent in true supplication
to avoid the sad fate of Divine devastation.
Dear Holy Mother, Our Mother of Love
does beg us to heed these dire words from above.
His Heart is torn by careless surrender,
of too many souls that don't try to remember,
The Father, the Son, the Spirit of Life,
smite in the heart with the human knife of
Hate! Greed! Avarice! Vanity!
All indications that sin is insanity!
What more must we do but place the full load
of saving all souls on the few who are bold;
Who'll stand up and fight for all Heaven's glory,
and meet with Pope Paul at the end of "Life's Story".
JUNE 20, 1970 - Candles must be carried at all Vigils,
to be lighted at the time of twelve, to herald the new day of
the Feast. As candles are lighted, this prayer is to be said:
Mary, light of the world, pray for us! Our Lady of the Roses,
pray for us! Mary, Help of Mothers, pray for us! (vol I page 10)
AUGUST 5, 1970 - My Hand In Yours (St. Theresa) (vol I
page 12)
Father, take my hand to guide me;
I'm small and very weak.
A child who needs Your guidance
On the road that I do seek.
I can walk the path before me
With the thorns along the way;
But without Your hand I'm sure to find
A price that I can't pay.
I'll trip and stumble, that's for sure.
But You'll be there beside me
To give me sight to follow the way
To the Kingdom You'll abide me.
FEBRUARY 11, 1971 - Repeat to all this prayer: Jesus extend
to us in the light, of your infinite knowledge, the power through
the light, to understand the task that lies ahead, for all of
us who wish to be saved. (vol I page 23)
DECEMBER 31, 1972 - Our Lady of the Rosary: Our Lady of
the Roses, Mary help of Mothers, We place our hope in Thee! To
guide us to the Savior. Stay with us, Mother, for soon, together,
we'll see the triumph of Jesus over his enemies! All praise, glory,
adoration, love, to him! (vol I page 77)
PERSONAL CONSECRATION O Immaculate Heart of Mary, Queen
of Heaven and earth, and tender Mother of men, in accordance with
Thy ardent wish made known at Fatima, I consecrate to Thee myself,
my family, my house, my town, my country, and the whole human
race.........Reign over us, and teach us how to make the Heart
of Jesus reign and triumph in us and around us, as it has reigned
and triumphed in Thee..........Reign over us, dearest Mother,
that we may be Thine in prosperity and in adversity, in joy and
in sorrow, in health and in sickness, in life and in death............We
want to atone for the many crimes committed against Jesus and
Thee. We want to call upon our country and the whole world the
peace of God in justice and charity..........Therefore, we now
promise to imitate Thy virtues by the practice of a Christian
life without regard to human respect. We resolve to receive Holy
Communion on the first Saturday of every month and to offer Thee
five decades of the Rosary each day, together with our sacrifices,
in the spirit of reparation and penance. Amen. (vol I page 78)
DECEMBER 29, 1973 - O Eternal Father, I offer Thee The
most Precious Body and Blood, Soul and Divinity of Our Lord Jesus
Christ in atonement for our sins, and for the sins of the whole
world. Through the Sorrowful (Heart) Passion of Jesus Show Mercy
unto us and to all the world!
O Most Holy Trinity, I adore Thee profoundly I offer Thee the
most Precious Body and Blood, Soul and Divinity of our Lord Jesus
Christ in atonement for the sacrileges, outrages, committed against
the Immaculate Heart of Mary and the Sacred Heart of Jesus! (vol
I page 154)
FEBRUARY 10, 1974 - My Jesus, I accept the cross. I dedicate,
I consecrate myself to the Sacred Heart of Jesus, and the Immaculate
Heart of May. Amen. In the name of the Father, and of the Son,
and of the Holy Ghost. Amen. (vol I page 168)
OCTOBER 2, 1974 - Begone satan! In the name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. I admonish you to return
to hell! There's only one God, the Lord High God in Heaven! And
as for you, you will return to satan and tell him these exact
words that I have told you! In the name of the Father, and of
the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Amen! (vol I page 276)
JUNE 5, 1975 - I Consecrate My House to the Immaculate
Heart: Most Blessed Virgin, whose Heart is sorrowful and immaculate
we recognize Thee as the Lady and the Queen of this house. ...........Have
the kindness to preserve it from any evil; from fire, water, thunder,
storms, earthquakes, from robbers, wicked people, from revolutionaries,
war, raids, from persecution and taxes, from any other evil known
by Thee............Bless, protect, defend and preserve as Thy
personal property, those who live and will live here. Keep them
away from adversity and misfortune, but above all, preserve them
from offending God, Let not a single mortal sin be ever committed
in this house. And may all those who enter it work for the glory
of God, for the reign of Jesus and Mary...........Let this house
be forever consecrated to you, O Jesus and Mary. Let it be blessed
with all those who will inhabit it. Amen. (vol I page 380)
JUNE 18, 1975 - My God, I believe, I adore, I trust and
I love Thee. I do penance for all those who do not believe, do
not adore, do not trust, and do not love Thee. (vol I page 378)
FEBRUARY 1, 1977 - My God, I believe, I adore, I trust
and I love Thee. I beg pardon for all those who do not believe,
do not adore, do not trust, and do not love Thee. (vol II page
21)
JULY 25, 1977 - My children, I bless you all as the Father
blesses you with the Spirit of light. There will be many angels
among you. They are forgotten by mankind, but, My children, they
are with you. They will help you in your struggles. And I assure
you, My children, you will need their help. Your will teach the
little children the prayer to their guardian: (vol II page 69)
O Angel of God, my guardian dear,
For whom God's love commits you here
Ever this day be at my side,
To light and guard, to rule and guide. Amen.
SEPTEMBER 7, 1977 - (vol II page 79)
Saint Michael the Archangel, defend us in battle. Be our protection
against the wickedness and snares of the devil. May God rebuke
him we humbly pray. And do thou, O prince of the heavenly host,
by the divine power of God, cast into hell, satan, and all evil
spirits who wander throughout the world seeking the ruin of souls.
SEPTEMBER 13, 1977 - (vol II page 86)
OFFERING OF HOLY HOUR FOR PRIESTS
O my God, poor, weak and miserable as I am, I have come to spend
this hour alone with You, in reparation for the priests who have
forgotten that they are Your chosen souls. Especially, dear God,
do I offer this holy hour for the priest who at this moment needs
it most. In praying for consecrated souls, help me to remember
my own utter weakness, misery and nothingness. Were is not for
Your grace, I would be far worse than those for whom I pray...........O
my God, help those priests who are faithful to remain faithful
to those who are falling, stretch forth Your divine hand that
they may grasp it as their support. And for those poor unfortunate
souls who have fallen, lift them up in the great ocean of Your
mercy, that being engulfed therein, they may receive the grace
to return to Your great loving heart. Amen.
FEBRUARY 1, 1978 - (vol II page 119) Love's Great Symbol
This crucifix I hold in hand Tis God made man who gives His all;
How I love it - oh, so well! Offers Himself instead of me!
Here's my King in His own land - His mother stays and does not fall,
Here is Love no words can tell! For my mother she is to be.
Who? up on the cross I see? And when with joy my heart is gay
Great giver of life and love I'll turn to Him who gives me joy
Suffers and dies for love of me And when instead He sends me pain
To give eternal joy above! I'll offer it all for love again -
For in the end, this pain is love
To give me greater joy above!
JUNE 1, 1978 - (vol II page 162) THE BEAUTIFUL HANDS
OF A PRIEST
We need them in life's early morning, we need And when we are tempted and wander to
them again at its close pathways of shame and of sin,
We feel their warm clasp of true friendship, Tis the hand of a priest will absolve us -
we seek them when tasting life's woes. not once, but again and again;
When we come to this world we are sinful, And when we are taking life's partner, other
the greatest as well as the least. hands may prepare us a feast,
And the hand that makes us pure as angels But the hand that will bless and unite us in
is the beautiful hand of the priest. is the beautiful hand of the priest.
At the altar each day we behold them and the God bless them and keep them all holy for
hands of a king on his throne, the Host which their fingers caress;
Are not equal to them in their greatness, their What can a poor sinner do better than to ask
dignity stands alone; Him, Who choose thee to bless?
For there is the stillness of morning, ere the When the death-dews on our eyelids are
sun has emerged from the East, falling may our courage and strength be There God rests between the pure fingers increased.
of the beautiful hands of the priest. By seeing raised offer us in blessing the beautiful hand of a priest!
DECEMBER 7, 1978 - My children and My child, I ask you
to retain in your homes the prayers given for reason to mankind
through My Son's priests. If necessary you will write them down,
like in the ABC's of your children's learning. You will write
the prayers and have them memorized by your children, to retain
the Faith in their hearts. The Acts of Faith, Hope, and Charity
were given for reason and must not be discarded. My child, I ask
that you repeat these prayers: (vol II page 209)
FAITH - O My God, I firmly believe that Thou are one God
in three Divine Persons; the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost.
I believe that Thy divine Son became Man and died for our sins
and that He shall come to judge the living and the dead. I believe
in the Holy Ghost, the Holy Catholic Church, the communion of
saints, the forgiveness of sins, the resurrection of the body
and life everlasting.
HOPE - O My God, relying on Thy infinite goodness and promises,
I hope to obtain pardon of my sins with the help of Thy grace
and life everlasting through the merits of Jesus Christ, My Lord
and My Redeemer.
CHARITY - O My God, I love above all things with my whole
heart and soul because Thou art all good and deserving of all
my love. I love my neighbor as myself for the love or Thee. I
forgive all who have injured me and ask pardon of all whom I have
injured.
JUNE 18, 1979 - (vol II page 228)
O Eternal Father, I offer Thee
The most precious Body and Blood,
Soul and Divinity of Our Lord Jesus
Christ in atonement for our sins,
and for the sins of the whole world.
Through the sorrowful (Heart) Passion of Jesus
Show Mercy unto us and to all the world.
O Most Holy Trinity,
I offer Thee the most Precious
Body and Blood, Soul and Divinity
of Our Lord Jesus Christ in
atonement for the sacrileges,
outrages, committed against the
Immaculate Heart of Mary and the
Sacred Heart of Jesus!
O My Jesus, it is for love of Thee,
in reparation to the Immaculate
Heart of Mary for the outrages
committed against Thy Sacred Heart.
OCTOBER 6, 1980 - Pieta (Dictated to Veronica by St. Theresa)
(vol II page 279)
To Her arms, so soft and loving
Lay the Heart of all creation -
Torn and bloody from the torment
wrought by sin's abomination Oh! dear Mother, is your sorrow, can you look upon us still?
"Yes, my dear child, I do love you!"
With a heart that's pure and kind
I will save you from disaster -
Only 'seek' and you shall find! Take Heart so torn with sorrow Kiss the wounds that sin did bleed, We are living now the past, dear - Lust and envy, hate and greed!
Once again He lay there hanging
Begging you to put aside
All the evil man has made
To make the road grow long and wide!
See the light grow sad and dimmer;
Listen now while there is time!
Turn and give your life to Jesus
Let Him lead you to the Shrine
Safe within His magic circle,
Blessed by peace of heart and soul,
You will find all Heaven's treasures
If you work to reach this goal!
JUNE 18, 1981 - Veronica: In memory of the many years with
Jesus and Our Lady and St. Theresa, I would like to read at this
time to you a poem-message from St. Theresa that goes back many
years; but, however, it applies all the way through the eleven
years to our times: It's Raining Teardrops from Heaven. (vol II
page 289)
It's raining teardrops from Heaven; But why must we give rejection,
The gates are opened anew When sinful ways make us weak?
To show to Jesus and Mary He puts His hand out in pity,
The souls that haven't been true To touch us in all He can do -
Their heads are bent low in sorrow For God gave man a born conscience
Their hearts are bleeding with care; To choose to be faithful and true.
For They have asked us to love Them, The pleasures are steeped more in evil;
And send our hearts up in prayer. The goodness inspired by God.
I stroke His face with compassion, The road to satan is easy;
I kiss the face wet with tears - But Heaven is earned very hard.
The time has not eased His heartache; The only ladder to Heaven is found
He's suffering more in our years In Our climbing in prayer;
His children turn from His pleadings, Each step will be shorter and higher
For worldly cares mean forgetting If we just try a little to care.
The One who begs us love Him; We'll except all the burdens and sorrows;
To save our souls from regretting. The joys will be just added graces.
He'll take a crumb of affection; We'll reserve out bright spot up in Heaven
The smallest sign He does seek - By accepting here lowly
places.
Veronica: And, also, to bring back all the wonderful years with
Our Lady and St. Theresa and Jesus, of course, Jesus first, this
take me back a good many years, but it has a meaning, a hidden
meaning; but if you listen carefully you'll understand. And I
think this will apply to every soul upon earth that receives this
message, and also will hear it, perhaps, on the tape: The Cross
Beneath the Roses.
Hidden from all eyes, but only known to Thee;
A treasure bought with suffering,
With sorrow and with glee -
Covered with the fragrance of heavenly perfume;
Nurtured with a confidence that heaven would be soon;
Carried through the years along with care and grace;
Fostered by the memory of His beloved face.
Lighter than a cloud, softer than the flower,
The cross beneath the roses
Was surely heaven's power!
AUGUST 14, 1981 - Veronica: This message in poetical form
was given to me by St. Theresa shortly before coming to the Vigil.
I was quite startled to have this phenomenon, as the world would
call it, because of the fact that it had been many years since
I have received from Theresa or Our Lady a pre-vigil message in
poetical form, as those in 1968-1969. But this is now to be brought
in with the Eve of Our Lady's feast of the Assumption. (vol II
page 293)
ATONEMENT - PRAYER - SACRIFICE
Remember to pray through "82"
And never forget to wear your blue.
To guard your way and bless your house
When skies light up and oceans foam.
The nine light up on even course
The flames eminate with such great force,
The sun in turning will dance around
To panic souls upon the ground.
Floods....great heat....expect anew;
The ones to be saved will be but a few.
He who defies the laws of God
Will find these tribulations hard.
Veronica: Now Theresa went on:
The heat of the sun will burn skin from the bones;
Then shed no light to brighten dark homes.
The moon will be covered in mourning haze;
Then give off a red cast in solid maze.
The seas will be empty, the ground found bare;
There will not be food for any to share.
Then many shall gnash their teeth in woe;
For now they have watched the seeds they did sow.
JUNE 18, 1982 - Our Lady: My child, that is why Theresa
had you write, "Tomorrow My Bridegroom." Do you remember
nothing of it? .....Veronica: Oh Blessed Mother, yes. (vol II
page 305)
I walk up through the garden,
With roses in my hand,
And place my left hand out
To show you there's a hand.
I've waited all these years
To see this dream come true;
I've watched and prayed,
And followed my heart
Until it came to you.
JULY 18, 1982 - Veronica: Our Lady had me type: (vol II
page 307)
Where do the eagles gather I am the Queen, your Mother,
To feast on decaying life, On a mission so far and wide;
For hell has opened wide There's no reason to fear My Son,
And set the demons' nest. But your sin you cannot hide.
Why do you kill your brother, Do penance, make atonement,
O ye of little faith? The time is so short,
Have you no reason to shudder For soon everything living
To stand forth as faithful and true? Will be treated as naught.
Or must you go farther forward in life, Give up your worldly pleasures;
Forgetting to wear your blue? As well as your hoarded treasures;
. For they, too, shall become as naught.
MAY 28, 1983 - Our Lord told St. Gertrude the Great, that
the following prayer would release 1,000 souls from Purgatory
each time it is said. The prayer was extended to include living
sinners which would alleviate the indebtedness accrued to them
during their lives. (vol II page 390)
Eternal Father, I offer Thee the Most Precious Blood of Thy Divine
Son, Jesus, in union with the Masses said throughout the world
today, for all the Holy Souls in Purgatory, for sinners everywhere,
for sinners in the Universal Church, those in my own home and
within my family. Amen.
VOLUME II PAGE 414 - Prayer Against Satan and The Rebellious
Angels - The Holy Father exhorts priests to say this prayer
as often as possible as a simple exorcism to curb the power of
the devil and prevent him from doing harm. The faithful also may
say it in their name, for the same purpose as any approved prayer.
Its use is recommended whenever action of the devil is suspected
causing malice, violent temptations and even storms and various
calamities. It could be used as a solemn exorcism (an official
and public ceremony in Latin), to expel the devil. It would then
be said by a priest in the name of the Church and only with the
Bishops permission. In the name of the Father, and of the Son
and of the Holy Ghost. Amen.
Prayer to Saint Michael the Archangel: Most glorious of the Heavenly
Armies, Saint Michael the Archangel, defend us in our battle against
principalities and powers, against the rulers of the world of
darkness, against the spirits of wickedness in high places. (Ephes.
VI, 12) Come to the assistance of men whom God has created to
His likeness and whom He has redeemed at a great price from the
tyranny of the devil. Holy Church venerates thee as her guardian
and protector; to thee the Lord has entrusted the souls of the
redeemed to be led into heaven. Pray therefore the God of Peace
to crush Satan beneath our feet, that he may no longer retain
men captive and do injury to the Church. Offer our prayers to
the Most High, that without delay they may draw His mercy down
upon us, take hold of the dragon, the old serpent which is the
devil and Satan, bind him and cast him into the bottomless pit
so that he may no longer seduce the nations. (Apoc XX, 2)
EXORCISM: In the Name of Jesus Christ, our God and Lord,
strengthened by the intercession of the Immaculate Virgin Mary,
Mother of God of Blessed Michael the Archangel, of the Blessed
Apostles Peter and Paul and all the Saints, (and powerful to the
holy authority of our ministry) we confidently undertake to repulse
the attacks and deceit of the devil.
Psalm 67. God arises: His enemies are scattered and those who
hate Him flee before Him.
As smoke is driven away, so are they driven, as wax melts before
the fire, so the wicked perish at the presence of God.
V. Behold the Cross of the Lord, flee bands of enemies.
R. He has conquered, the Lord of the tribe of Judah, the offspring
of David.
V. May Thy mercy, Lord, descend upon us.
R. As great as our hope in Thee.
The crosses indicate a blessing to be given if a priest recites
the exorcism; if a lay person recites it, they indicate the sign
of the Cross to be made silently by that person.
We drive you from us, whoever you may be, unclean spirits, all
satanic powers, all infernal invaders, all wicked legions, assemblies
and sects; in the Name and by the power of Our Lord Jesus Christ,
+ may you be snatched away and driven from the Church of God and
from the souls made to the image and likeness of God and redeemed
by the Precious Blood of the Divine Lamb. + Most cunning serpent,
you shall no more dare to deceive the human race, persecute the
Church, torment God's elect and sift them as wheat. + The Most
High God commands you. + He with whom, in your great insolence,
you still claim to be equal; He who wants all men to be saved
and to come to the knowledge of the truth. (1 Tim. II 4), God
the Father commands you. + God the Son commands you. + Christ,
God's Word made flesh, commands you. + He who to save our race
outdone through your envy, humbled Himself, becoming obedient
even unto death (Phil. II, 8); He who has built His Church on
the firm rock and declared that the gates of hell shall not prevail
against Her, because He will dwell with Her all days even to the
end of the world. (St. Mat. XXVIII, 20). The sacred Sign of the
Cross commands you. + as does also the power of the mysteries
of the Christian Faith. + The glorious Mother of God, the Virgin
Mary, commands you. + She who by her humility and from the first
moment of her Immaculate Conception, crushed your proud head.
The faith of the Holy Apostles Peter and Paul and of the other
Apostles commands you. + The blood of the Martyrs and the pious
intercession of all the Saints command you. +
The cursed dragon, and you, diabolical legions, we abjure you
by the living God. + by the true God. + by the holy God. + by
the God who so loved the world that He gave up His only Son, that
every soul belonging to Him might not perish but have life everlasting
(St. John III); stop deceiving human creatures and pouring out
to them the poison of eternal damnation; stop harming the Church
and hindering her liberty. Begone, Satan, inventor and master
of all deceit, enemy of man's salvation. Give place to Christ
in whom you have found none of your works; give place to the One,
Holy, Catholic and Apostolic Church acquired by Christ at the
price of His Blood. Stoop beneath the all-powerful Hand of God;
tremble and flee when we invoke the Holy and terrible Name of
Jesus, this Name which causes hell to tremble, this Name to which
the Virtues, Powers and Domination's of heaven are humbly submissive,
this Name which the Cherubim and Seraphim praise unceasingly repeating
Holy, Holy, Holy is the Lord, the God of Armies.
V. O Lord, hear my prayer.
R. And let my cry come unto Thee.
V. May the Lord be with thee.
R. And with thy spirit.
Let us pray. - God of heaven. God of earth. God of Angels. God
of Archangels. God of Patriarchs. God of Prophets. God of Apostles.
God of Martyrs. God of Confessors. God of Virgins. God who has
power to give life after death and rest after work, because there
is no other God than Thee and there can be no other, for Thou
art the Creator of all things, visible and invisible, of whose
reign there shall be no end, we humbly prostrate ourselves before
Thy glorious Majesty and we beseech Thee to deliver us by Thy
power from all the tyranny of the infernal spirits, from their
snares, their lies and their furious wickedness; deign, O Lord,
to grant us Thy powerful protection and to keep us safe and sound.
We beseech Thee through Jesus Christ Our Lord. Amen.
From the snares of the devil, deliver us, O Lord.
That Thy Church may serve Thee in peace and liberty, we beseech
Thee to hear us.
That Thou may crush down all enemies of Thy Church, we beseech
Thee to hear us.
(Holy water is sprinkled in the place where we may be)
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG) - St. Theresa: My sister, my dear
sister Veronica, how happy I am to see you again after all these
years. I have been around, but not permitted by the Eternal Father
to appear before you as I did in the early years. But I have been
guiding you. I wish at you will recite for me, Veronica, the poem
message. This for our dear Jesus here: Spiritual Childhood:
Dear Jesus, all I can do is just love You,
For my riches are here in my heart;
They're not locked or chained against stealing,
They're always free to depart!
I offer this gift to You, Jesus;
Accept it with Your precious joy.
I'm there to hold in Your Kingdom;
Just treat me as Your little toy!
JUNE 17, 1989 (MSG) - My child, I did not wish to weaken your condition any more, more than necessary, before the blessing of the infirm and the ill. However, I feel that at this time you must include the prayers and the admonitions given by Heaven throughout the years for those who do not choose to read but to listen: For Our dear Holy Father, Pope John Paul II. you will repeat:
Dear Holy Father, John Paul II,
Dear Holy Father, worried and wan,
Will struggle with Jesus to gather the sheep.
The pastures are rich, but the sheep grow thin;
For the souls have succumbed to the sickness of sin.
You'll need reinforcements from heavenly shores,
So deep is the darkness of earth's shallow mores.
All hearts must ascend in true supplication
To avoid the sad fate of divine devastation.
Dear holy Mother, your Mother of love,
Does beg you to heed these dire words from above:
His Heart is torn by careless surrender
Of too many souls that don't try to remember
The Father, the Son, the Spirit of life-
Cast upon the earth a world of strife.
What more must you do now but place the full load
Of saving all souls on the few who are bold;
Who'll stand up and fight for all Heaven's glory,
And meet with John Paul II at the end, the end of life's story.
I wish that all mothers and fathers bring this simple prayer to
the hearts of their children. For in the future, with the raging
wars and pestilence and famine that will come upon mankind, many
will pass over the veil at a young age. You must teach them, parents,
to say this simple prayer to Heaven:
Now I lay me down to sleep,
I pray the Lord my souls to keep.
If I should die before I wake,
I pray the Lord my soul to take.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG)
The end is not as far as you can see;
Already there is apostasy.
Man cast his lot and gathered the coals
To stoke the fires that burn the souls.
The days are numbered, your hours are few;
So work and pray and try to do
The work that that's given in the light,
Until that sad time when all is night.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG) - Therefore when you despair, say:
O My Jesus, forgive us our sins,
Save us from the fires of hell,
Lead all souls to Heaven,
Especially those most in need of Your mercy.
I wish that all mothers and fathers bring this simple prayer to
the hearts of their children. For in the future, with the raging
wars and pestilence and famine that will come upon mankind, many
will pass over the veil at a young age. You must teach them, parents,
to say this simple prayer to Heaven.
Now I lay me down to sleep,
I pray the Lord my soul to keep.
If I should die before I wake,
I pray the Lord my soul to take.
St. Theresa: You will try, my sister, to send the poem messages
throughout the world. They will fall into the hands of those who
are deemed to receive them.
PRIDE
V O L U
M E I
FEBRUARY 28, 1971 - My Mother is much grieved that Her
Messages are not read with care; heed the Message of Sept. 7,
1970, and Fatima 1917; I will not dispense any longer My Graces
to arrogant or prideful man, that will not listen! It will be
your duty, My child, to chase these interlopers from My Mother's
sacred grounds! I will not gather souls at the expense of My Mother's
anguished Heart or respect. Please heed this warning! (vol I page
24)
APRIL 10, 1971 - My child, this is what you will suffer
to gather the 144,000 true souls. My child, how well you will
carry My Son's Cross!, for many will pass on the same road My
Son did before this life as your know it, will pass away. You
must remember, My children, that the most bountiful harvest is
gained when We start pulling out the weeds, for when the stalks
are bent, for they failed to weather the storm, the soil blows
away and new seed must be planted. How hardened the hearts of
so many! Oh, poor, unseeing man, that would rather see many die
so that they can be rescued from their doubts! Who would see others
die to be proven true in their judgment, pride! Pride, befits
the ultimate fall! Could you not sacrifice your own destructive
pride and search in those satan dens on this earth, to save your
fellow man, your brothers and sisters! (vol I page 26)
AUGUST 21, 1971 - You have taxed the patience of your God,
with your pride, your intellectual pride, your vanity, your materialism,
your humanism, excluding in truth your God from your life! (vol
I page 34)
DECEMBER 7, 1971 - All who deny My Son and have developed
pride in worldly interests, blinding them to the words of My prophets
choosing to rewrite to distort the written and spoken word of
Our prophets, to satisfy their own purpose and self gratification,
striving after their own hearts, their own work of folly. Oh,
arrogant man! Why do you take your brothers and sisters further
from Us? We view the vilest of desecration's being perpetrated
in My Son's House! (vol I page 40)
FEBRUARY 1, 1972 - The world is fast turning to darkness.
Man must learn to humble his spirit. His excessive luxuries are
destroying his spirit. The arrogance of man in his intellectual
pride has made him build his nest in the sky, but I will bring
down the eagle from his nest! vol I page 43)
MAY 30, 1973 - Intellectual pride, My children, has been
the downfall of many. You will not enter the Kingdom unless you
strip yourself of this pride and return to Us as little children.
(vol I page 103)
AUGUST 5, 1973 - Pagans roam the world, pagans walk into
the House of God. Man, you have reduced yourselves to the state
of an animal. Your intellectual pride has set you down the ladder
to the fires. (vol I page 119)
NOVEMBER 24, 1973 - It is arrogant of man to set himself
above the Father. It is pride of man who wishes to place himself
above the founding Fathers. The rules for your salvation and the
way was given fully in the Book of life and love. No changes will
be made. The contents will not be altered to follow the fancy
of man. When you start burrowing into the foundation, you weaken
the structure. However, the foundation of the House of God is
in the light. The walls may crumble, but the foundation is always
there. Rebuild the walls, patch the cracks, and return the sheep
that have strayed. (vol I page 145)
JUNE 18, 1974 - Make it known to the world, My child, that
the soul when it leaves your body has full consciousness, full
knowledge of what goes on about it. Know that the Father created
mankind to follow in the majesty of the Father. However, sad to
say, My child, many have sought to join and equal the majesty
of the Father. This arrogance and pride sets them onto the road
to their own destruction, for as the Father cast out of Heaven
those who set themselves above Him so shall all who set themselves
upon earth above the Father be cast into the abyss of eternal
damnation. (vol I page 221,221)
JULY 1, 1974 - The Spirit of truth, My children, has been
sent to you countless numbers of times in the present and the
past. Many have rejected them, choosing to set themselves onto
the road of error and damnation. Pride, intellectual pride in
the House of God is more a formidable barrier than outright licentiousness!
This barrier destroys! Rid yourselves of this pride and arrogance!
Return to your state of poverty of the body and meekness of the
soul! Unless you make yourselves like unto the little children,
you will not enter into the Kingdom. (vol I page 225)
AUGUST 21, 1974 - Man of pride and arrogance has set himself
above the Father! Your country and many countries of your world
are following the same course as in the past. Why have you not
learned from the past? Sodom! Gomorrah! Nineveh! Babylon! All
fell because of sin! Sin is insanity! Minds have been clouded
by satan! Awaken My priests from their sleep! Open your eyes!
(vol I page 247)
NOVEMBER 1, 1974 - I must caution you that a great delusion
has entered upon your world. Do not follow in the ways of man,
for he has set himself up with an idol. Remain humble, charitable,
in your approach to your sheep. Arrogance and pride shall send
man from the narrow road to the Kingdom. Intellectual pride has
cast many into hell. The warning I give you must not be taken
lightly. There is much being perpetrated in My House that offends
the Father greatly. (vol I page 290)
NOVEMBER 23, 1974 - You, My child, must learn a simple
lesson. If you are given your reward upon earth, what have you
to look forward to in the Kingdom? Do you work, My child, in secret
so that the Father Who see you in secret shall reward you. It
is only the human frailty of pride that makes man seek recognition.
Yes, My child, pride is a sin. Mortification; this, My child,
will be sent to you for reason. Soon you will thirst for mortification,
for only in this manner will you retrieve the souls. (vol I page
299)
DECEMBER 6, 1974 - Pride and arrogance has set many onto
the road to destruction; soul destruction! It is sad, My child,
that those who have the most power to do good, are using this
power now to destroy the young souls. (vol I page 301)
It is only your human pride that will make you seek the acknowledgment
of mankind. This is a weakness, My child, of all human nature.
Pray and you will be strengthened in this virtue. You will find
that you will accept suffering and rejection more easily. (vol
I page 302)
MARCH 18, 1975 - Pride, My child, must never enter upon
you or your work, for pride is a great sin in the eyes of the
Eternal Father. It was pride that sent Luciel, Lucifer, from the
Kingdom. (vol I page 341)
MARCH 29, 1975 - The habit of the cleric has often been
soiled because of intellectual pride, My child. Know now, that
the intellectual pride is a far greater barrier against sanctity,
will hinder you from the path of sanctity faster, My children,
than outright licentiousness and evil. Intellectual pride is the
downfall of many. Pride, My children is a sin. (vol I page 351)
In order to reach the Kingdom of the Father you must divest yourselves,
remove all pride and worldly searching. You must become as confident
as trusting as a child. Know that all is yours for the asking.
Believe and you will be given the way. My Son in the Eucharist
is always with you to strengthen you. (vol I page 352)
Yes, My child, you will feel faint at the knowledge of the existence
of hell. Better that mankind has fear of the Eternal Father if
he does not have love for now many are in a void of spirit. They
neither know their God nor do they care to know their God!!!..........Why,
My child, you ask has this state come about? Because mankind refuses,
My child, to humble himself! He must be above his brother! Pride,
intellectual pride shall destroy many! Even in the Houses of God.
Pray, My child, for many are called but few are chosen. (vol I
page 353)
MAY 17, 1975 - Your men of great learning upon earth, My
child, have risen to the heights of Heaven with their arrogance,
their pride, and their satanic diversions; they have risen far
beyond what the Father would call a safety line for mankind. As
in the days past, man is following the road of the fallen angels.
The Eternal Father cannot accept into the Kingdom of Heaven, man
who does not repent of his arrogance, his pride, his false teachings,
and his sin. No man shall enter the Kingdom of the Father unless
he repents of his pride, his arrogance, does penance now while
there is time. (vol I page 362)
OCTOBER 6, 1975 - Pastors, do you reject the Message from
Heaven because you fear it, or do you prefer to ignore it because
it will expose your error? P-r-i-d-e, false pride, My children,
is the downfall of many! Cast aside this worldly pride! You have
only One to face when you come over the veil. It is the judgment
of the Eternal Father. (vol I page 429)
DECEMBER 24, 1975 - Much that will take place now in your
generation has been planned, My children, for the future but through
your arrogance and pride, you have rose high above what the Eternal
Father has given to mankind as a goal. You seek to invade the
realms of Heaven. You seek to set up a kingdom of man. And what
have you given to yourselves but a kingdom of darkness and sin,
and all manner of abominations. (vol I page 457)
MARCH 18, 1976 - The sin of pride and the arrogance of
many in My House, Church, have set a pattern of soul-destruction
among the young. I have asked that all who have been given the
glory from the Eternal Father to follow My road as pastors, shepherds
of Our sheep, there is much lacking in their direction. I do not
have to give a listing by name, the plan of the Eternal Father
shall reach those who permit and commit evil in their vocations.
(vol I page 478)
MAY 15, 1976 - Because of your arrogance, because of your
greed, your pride, you have succumbed along with your sheep to
all of the evils of the flesh. Many souls have gone into hell,
because they pursued all the treasures of your earth and did not
look upward and bring their treasures to the Kingdom of the Eternal
Father. I repeat to you: What does it matter if you gain the whole
world and have suffered the loss of your immortal soul? (vol I
page 487)
MAY 29, 1976 - You country, as a leader for the world,
is setting itself in for greater chastisement. And why? Because
of your example! Your luxury has been your downfall; your pride
has been your downfall; and the Eternal Father has allowed you,
in your sin, to continue fast upon your way so that you will reach
satan, the prince of darkness, whom you have chosen to give yourself
to! (vol I page 496)
JULY 24, 1976 - Man through the ages became dissatisfied
and filled with pride. He sought to bring in, to enter upon the
Bible his own interpretation of the wordings. To the simple of
heart, those who do not succumb to pride and arrogance, the wordings
are quite clear. (vol I page 512)
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - Pray a constant vigilance of prayer,
for satan shall attack all who seek to remain on the road to Heaven.
The greatest attacks will be upon those who become and fall in
the name of pride and arrogance. Yes, My child, you must pray
for him, for his soul is in great danger. (vol I page 549)
DECEMBER 24, 1976 - Experimentation and all manners of
abomination being committed in the name of humanism and modernism,
for what but destruction! You travel about like the chickens without
heads, flapping your wings in pride and arrogance, for your heads
have been taken off. And those with heads, they extend into the
cloud, dark clouds above them, blinded by their pride! Get down
to your knees and take off this pride and arrogance that has made
you blind to the truth! (vol I page 571)
DECEMBER 28, 1976 - My voice is carried throughout your
world, and many have hardened their hearts and closed their ears,
and why? Because pride and arrogance have blinded them to the
truth. Only prayer, penance and atonement can bring them back.
(vol I page 576)
DECEMBER 31, 1976 - Arrogance and pride has made man close
his eyes and become blind to what is happening. Because of his
sin, he has been allowed to be blinded. Satan gathers his army
of souls, fallen souls, lukewarm souls, and man of pride, to bring
about the downfall of My House, My Church. But I say unto you,
as your God: The gates of hell shall not open wide enough and
empty fast enough to destroy My Church. (vol I page 579,580)
Errors are compounded upon errors in My House. The Red Hats are
given to all sins of the flesh. The Purple Hats follow in blind
obedience, and they, too, fall to all manner of sins of the flesh
and worldliness, self-seeking, arrogant, and prideful. Because
of these reasons, My children, they are blinded to the truth..............My
Mother and the saints in Heaven cry bitter tears of remorse and
anguish for you. Your country and the world, My children, has
become obsessed with immodesty and filth, all creations of satan,
all soul-destroyers. And how many of you go along your way, not
My way, My children, but your way, to your damnation with your
permissiveness, with your self-satisfaction, with your lust, and
your desire for the material! Have you destroyed your soul so
that you no longer recognize that one day each and every one of
you must die in your body and come out of your body in your soul,
your spirit eternal, that will live on forever? (vol I page 580)
V O L U
M E I I
APRIL 2, 1977 - The Eternal Father is not an angry God,
but, My children, He will chastise those He loves. Mankind has
given itself over to all manners of sin and degradation until
We see a world that has become a cesspool of sin and error. There
was a great possibility for retrieving many before the great test,
until it became evident that because of pride and arrogance, those
with the greatest power to prevent the Chastisement have plunged
forward faster, heading the world to its own destruction by fire.
(vol II page 32)
APRIL 9, 1977 - My children, you do not learn from your
past. It is pride and vanity that sets man away from his God.
Life upon your earth is but a short duration for all. Think, My
children, think while you have the time to think. Evaluate and
re-evaluate your life. Cast aside the worthless, cast aside all
that can only be kept upon your lifetime on earth. Are you storing
any merits in Heaven for your entrance? Each and every one of
you, My children, must come across the veil, the veil that will
be taken from your eyes when you approach immortality. (vol II
page 35)
MAY 18, 1977 - As seeds in the garden, I sent you to earth,
and many of you fell among the thorns and were choked by the cares
of the world. Many of you accepted the pure waters, but as you
grew, you stopped halfway up the ladder. Many of you were given
the pure waters and you climbed high in the knowledge of Heaven
to never reach fulfillment because of pride. Pride, My children,
is a great sin among mankind, for pride has been the fall of many.
(vol II page 44)
JUNE 4, 1977 - The forces of evil loosed upon your world
gathered to try to stop the good work from Heaven. My child, it
is a lesson for all that vanity and pride comes before the fall.
You understand, My children, that man has a free will and is allowed
to exercise it. And the greatest sin among man is pride. The angels
in Heaven that joined Lucifer, satan, were cast out of Heaven
as they became arrogant and sought to be God. (vol II page 54)
MAY 3, 1978 - All that has been given through the years
shall come to pass, My children. But I ask you in all charity
not to wish for any destruction to come upon mankind, for you
may be guilty in your hearts of pride, knowing that you have received
the word and have prepared, but, My children, there are many souls
not to reach, and you must not slacken in your work. The mission
will go forward. You will be given many hands, My child, in your
mission. (vol II page 142)
AUGUST 19, 1978 - My child and My children, Lucifer knows
how to reach mankind, for man has given himself over to pride
and arrogance. You must all pray constantly that you do not fall
into error. My children, as parents now you have full responsibility
for the salvation of your household. Your children are now at
the mercy of those who are outside the doors of your home. Many
demons are loosed upon earth now with Lucifer, and they shall
enter into the bodies of mankind and work their will. (vol II
page 183)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1978 - I say unto you unless you turn back
now, bishops and cardinals, and restore My Son's House. Do not
be prideful. It is too late for false pride! You must admit your
errors. turn back and start over! You were given a simple rule
to follow. These rules were given to you and written for you in
the Book of Life, your Bible. You have chosen in your arrogance
and pride to cast aside these teachings and to build another church
upon earth, a church of man. You are building it without the help
of the angels. (vol II page 189)
NOVEMBER 20, 1978 - We will ask for more victim souls upon
earth. It is sad but a fact that only a few will be saved in the
final count. It is sad but a fact that We must now depend upon
the few who receive the grace to carry the light now through the
darkness that becomes more deepened by man's sin of pride and
obstinacy. (vol II page 203)
MAY 23, 1979 - Remember this, O pastors in My Church, pride
is a great barrier against sanctity. Pride shall destroy you!
You must return by a simple rule. You must become humble, pious,
seeking God and not the ways of man. You must return, My pastors,
to a life of prayer. (vol II page 215)
AUGUST 4, 1979 - Because of pride, which is a worse barrier
to holiness, a more formidable barrier against holiness and piety,
O clergy, because of your pride, because you did not lock your
doors against the heretics as I have warned you; because you did
not prepare for satan whom I warned you years of earth's time
before would enter into My Son's Church to do battle with His
clergy, you did not prepare and guard yourselves for this onslaught.
And now, what are the real fruits of your labors; a loss of vocations,
My children losing the knowledge of their Faith, all manner of
sin, perversion and abominations being committed upon earth, until
all the saints in Heaven cry out to the merciful Father to put
an end to these abominations. Less and less honor is being given
to My Son. (vol II page 236)
My children of light, you will continue. Do not become prideful
and slacken your pace or think that your work has been finished.
You shall continue working ceaselessly until the great Chastisement.
For those who have received great graces from Heaven much is
expected of them. And O for the man, who through pride or covetness
rejects these graces! I say unto him, he has lost the key to the
Kingdom. ..........The way to Heaven has been written in the Book
of life, your Bible. We do not expect you to change it to please
man, for man must change his ways that offend his God to please
his God, for man must survive to be as perfect as God the Father
to enter, in order to enter, the Kingdom of God the Father. Therefore,
you will not change the doctrines or go about with itching ears
listening to theologians who have become now bloated with pride
and arrogance and now seek man a god in his own world. But remember:
Every man, woman and child upon earth will leave his body sooner
or later, for he must die and pass over the veil for judgment.
(vol II page 238)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1979 - I say unto you; unless you turn back
now, bishops and cardinals, and restore My Son's House, do not
be prideful; it is too late for false pride! You must admit your
errors. Turn back and start over! You were given a simple rule
to follow. These rules were given to you and written for you in
the Book of Life, your Bible. You have chosen in your arrogance
and pride to cast aside these teachings and to build another church
upon earth, a church of man. You are building it without the help
of the angels. (vol II page 252)
OCTOBER 2, 1979 - The Eternal Father shall chastise those
He loves. Shall you be counted among the sheep or the goats, Bishops.
Strip yourselves of your pride and your arrogance! For pride is
a more formidable barrier against sanctity than even outright
licentiousness! Pride comes before the fall, and all that is rotten
shall fall! (vol II page 255)
OCTOBER 6, 1979 - You have been given, My children, many
graces through your sacramentals; graces for cures, graces for
conversions. Many of you shall experience a supernatural manifestation
for your edification and strength. But do not become prideful,
for pride is a true barrier, a more formidable barrier against
holiness and sanctity than even outright licentiousness. (vol
II page 258)
NOVEMBER 24, 1979 - Pray, My children, for your governments,
your government leaders; and pray always for your clergy, for
many have become weak and have given themselves over to material
gain, and also a lust for power through pride. Pride is truly
a more formidable barrier against holiness and piety than even
outright licentiousness. Pride is a sin, and shall keep many from
entering into the Kingdom of Heaven. (vol II page 264)
You believe you can cast aside the commandments of the Eternal
Father and exist in peace? No, My children, already your world
has given full evidence of what happens when you become arrogant
and prideful and seek to rule as little gods upon earth. You cast
aside all religious foundation build new religions that are guided
by false doctrines of humanism and modernism and satanism. Oh,
My children, you never learn from your past, because you are now
in a state far worse than in the times of Noe and Sodom. And what
then shall be your fate? (vol II page 265)
JUNE 18, 1980 - Remember; Do not become prideful, nor arrogant,
nor be, let your guard down in conceit, for pride is a sin. Remember
always that the close you approach to Heaven, the greater the
armies of Lucifer will come after you seeking to take you away
from the road, the narrow road that leads to the Kingdom. (vol
II page 272)
Remember, My children, those who have been given graces, much
is expected of them. You must continue to go forward. Do not slacken
in your work, your mission. Do not become complacent nor content
in your own salvation, for that will be pride, and pride can make
you fall. Therefore, in all charity, reach out for your brothers
and your sisters. Your lives must remain free from contamination
of worldly pleasures and seeking, for the world has now been given
to satan. (vol II page 273)
JUNE 18, 1981 - Awaken from your slumber clergy in My Son's
Church, for you will also be counted among the least. In pride
and arrogance you have refused My counsel from Heaven. You have
turned away from Me. You have persecuted those I have sent to
you. Your pride and arrogance shall make you fall. Many mitres
shall fall into hell. Is this what you want? (vol II page 291)
AUGUST 14, 1981 - Are you so blind that you do not recognize
the acceleration of sin among you? Murders abound, thievery, all
manner of carnage, destruction of young souls, abortion, homosexuality,
condoned from the beginning of time by the Eternal Father. Yet
sin has become a way of life. Sin is condoned now, even unto the
highest judges of your land and your lands throughout the world.
As you have sown so shall you reap. Sin is death, not only to
the spirit, but of the body. Wars are a punishment for man's sin,
his greed, his avarice. Pride and arrogance is bringing down into
hell mitres from My Son's House. (vol II page 294)
And when you go about the world, beware that no pride or arrogance
comes in upon you, or you will lose your grace. Because when you
do good among man and mankind, you do it for the Eternal Father,
Who watches you in secret. Therefore, you will not let the left
hand know what you're doing with your right hand. (vol II page
296)
MAY 21, 1983 - Pride is a sin and a most formidable barrier
against sanctity and holiness. And that this, My children and
My child, has been accepted by many of your bishops not just in
the United States, not just in Canada, but throughout the whole
world. .........Man will fall from pride and arrogance, and fall
into the clutches of satan. Is this what you want? Please, My
children, have pity on your brothers and pray for them. (vol II
page 386)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG) - Look, My child, and see man scurrying
to and fro, and where is he going but to damnation! Man has given
himself over to satan, as satan roams the world. And if you had
only listened to Me many years ago; I warned you that satan would
be loosed upon earth with every demon out of the abyss. What chance
do you have, My children, if you are so proud and arrogant that
you think that you can consort with satan and come out the winner.
No, My child, his powers are too great. I cannot explain to you
at this time why this is allowed. It is a mystical feat against
satan.
JUNE 18, 1986 (MSG) - And if you think you have seen carnage
now already in the Church, the worst is yet to come, unless you
follow the rules, given by My Mother many years ago, of prayer,
atonement, and sacrifice. By your example you may be able to save
others. For soon there will come upon you the great Chastisement.
It comes in two parts, My child and My children: The Third World
War and, also, the Ball of Redemption. These can no longer be
delayed. For the good seem to go about their way, perhaps pride
fully. We do not seek to accuse or place a stigma on any, but
some may pride fully sit back and let others go forth and make
these sacrifices and prayers and penance. Because they have become
smug, or because they have not the grace to understand, that once
you receive this grace much is expected of you. You must even
work harder to save your brothers and sisters.
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 (MSG) - Have you forgotten My counsel
of all of the years of My appearances upon earth? I have gone
to little children and big children, but they are all little children
in Our eyes. There is no age counted in Heaven. You are all children
of God, and as such, you must be a pride and a joy to Him. And
when you hurt Him, He is hurt most deeply. And therefore, He allows
satan to go about in his reign. Satan knows that his time is growing
short; there're, he is acting in full fury.
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - Guard your children, mothers of the
world, guard them against the forces that are loosed upon earth.
It is truly the final battle raging with Lucifer. ...........You
ask Me, My child, why does this have to come about? I say with
sadness, I say this for Myself and My Mother: We have used every
means possible to bring mankind back onto the right road, but
he has chosen his own path, one built on pride, arrogance and
lust.
PRIESTHOOD/CLERGY/REPRESENTATIVES
V O L
U M E I
JULY 1, 1970 - The children are the innocent victims, misguided
by the dedicated who feed half-truths and black abominations to
starve young souls! Woe to defiled man! Why do you deny My angels?
The beauties of Heaven are in their arms. Remember, My children,
Heaven and earth will pass away, all will be as white, but I hold
the Key to the Kingdom given by My Son. No one will come to the
Father but through My Son. Stay under My mantle, My children,
and you will find peace. Reject Me or My Son, and the end of life
as you know it will be hastened. ............I am the advocate
of peace, the Mediatrix between God and man, abundant with graces
for the asking. I am now the Guardian of the Cross. I stand beneath
the Cross. No soiled hands can touch My Son's Body. Only God can
purify the hands. (Consecrated hands) (vol I page 10)
JULY 15, 1970 - Pray for My priests. They are led into
the darkness. Many hearts are hardened to the truth. There is
salvation in prayer. Many will be sacrificed in the engulfment.
Carry your cross, My children. All hearts must rise to Heaven
in prayer. .....Man has become arrogant, forgetting his God. Many
of My dedicated have lost their way. (vol I page 11)
OCTOBER 6, 1970 - Realize the power in your hand with the
Rosary, for in your hands you hold the power of God. If you do
not recognize the Rosary, can you expect to be recognized by My
Son? How much can you expect? Why do you hide My Rosary? It was
with a Mother's living Heart that I chose to give you these pearls
of Heaven that you reject!................Woe to all the dedicated
who seek to remove these from the little hands for their punishment
will metered in accordance to it! (vol I page 15)
NOVEMBER 21, 1970 - There is great disobedience to Our
Vicar! These disobedience are among his most trusted! Why do you
seek the riches of the world? Have you forgotten your God? ................Foolish
virgins! (the nuns) Why do you choose to live in the world on
earth! Have you become blind to modesty? Has vanity invaded your
hearts? Woe to those who cause the down fall of Our dedicated
by their example! You are following the evil circle. My dedicated,
for it is like a chain of evil, link to link! By your example
you build a solid chain to hell! For woe to those entrusted with
the souls of the little one, and who lead the little ones to hell!
(vol I page 17)
Do not My dedicated, take away the pictures and statues for then
the children will cast their eyes on things of the world. We will
be just a memory, a legend to them. Blessed be the dear souls
who placed the child in My arms...... (vol I page 18)
DECEMBER 7, 1970 - You will not be cold, My children, when
our hearts are warm with love. My children, pray with all charity
for your priests for many have fallen into the web of satan. Already
the man of sin is in your Country! Recognize the evil about you,
that is covered by the false face of those who parade themselves
as Angels of Light. (vol I page 18)
DECEMBER 24, 1970 - The numbers of those in the service
of thy Father is growing smaller. Pray for the vocations that
are sorely needed. A great void is being created by the loss of
vocations, for the little ones are left to wander. (vol I page
18)
DECEMBER 26, 1970 - Pray always for your priests, your
pastors, who are now confused. It is a way of satan, this confusion,
for men grow weak from confusion. Increase your numbers of Rosaries,
for they will always hold back the darkness. The graces you will
need will come from the Father because of His great Love of his
darkening world. (vol I page 20)
FEBRUARY 1, 1971 - The monuments, your statues, they MUST
be kept in your homes, for all who keep them in their homes will
be saved. The broken cross, the sign of the man of perdition,
the sign of the anti-Christ, so-called peace symbol, all who wear
this ARE DOOMED! The Rosary is broken, people do not take this
seriously, My children, how many signs must be given to you? The
man of perdition has spread his folly wide! The Light has not
passed through the Papal Village. He has kept it in darkness.
...........I caution you again! Keep your doors barred! It was
not the Will of God that forced this cross upon you, My children,
for My Voice hath cried to you through endless years. To repent,
but you heeded not My warnings! My travels have been world-wide,
My tears shed in every land. My Voice grew weak and now there
will be the Great Pause! During this time, My children, I can
only impress on you the necessity for constant prayer. Guard your
doors well now, against the enemy who walks the land. He has come
to your locality to try to destroy My work here. He knows that
We plan to recover many souls by Our vigil of prayer. He will
use the clergy to stop you, My child. Trust in the Majesty of
My Son, for His Will, will be done! (vol I page 22)
FEBRUARY 11, 1971 - My Heart is saddened also at the reception of My Words by the clergy but it is not less than We have expected, for hearts have grown hardened. ......This man of perdition, this man out of hell, will spread his darkness through Holy Church! Hold the Truth always in your heart! Pray for your priests, your hierarchy, for the Faith has grown weak! They will be victimized by the evil one who is now loose in your Land. He will only possess a soul that has grown weak! Strengthen your souls by staying with My Son, near the Tabernacles of the world. Accept the gift of My Son often, His Physical Body, present in your Eucharist, given to you only by consecrated hands blessed by My Son and Ordained to do His Work and represent Him! Turn you face from those who wish to profane the Body of My Son. The Light of the Holy
Spirit will guide you in this respect! The indignities to My Son,
the Eternal Father and all Heaven are increasing with the increased
destruction of the man of sin! His goal is the possession of all
spirits destined for My Son's Kingdom. (vol I page 23)
APRIL 3, 1971 - I must now caution you in the days ahead,
you must not be led or misled by the events that the evil one
will bring upon you in his attempt to destroy My Son's House (Church).
You must help your priests. It is not constructive to speak out
in anger against My Son's House. If you have anything to say that
you feel is being done wrong, go to the ones concerned, your priests,
your bishops. Do not spread words among the disbelievers, those
waiting to take anything that can be thrown back to destroy My
Son's House. You must realize now that the trouble within My Son's
House has been caused by defiled man of perdition, the anti-Christ,
who has been loosed among you in this final battle. If you would
put aside your worldly pleasures, your pampering of your body,
your eyes would no longer be blinded. You could see the existence
of the evil one in your country; but no! You have chosen to cast
Us aside for temporary pleasures. Those who have loved Us enough
to care; there is nothing to fear, for We will extend Our Mercy
far and wide. ...........There are many sins against the Holy
Spirit. This offends My Son very much. If you do not understand
you will go to your priest and he will explain it to you. You
must pray for My Vicar, for there will be a great sorrow. (vol
I page 26)
MAY 19, 1971 - Oh, My Jesus, how well the darkness covers the land. We look upon hate, greed, paganism and murder. The darkest of sins are being committed! Guard your children from the unholy ray. Keep the monuments (statues) in your home, keep the Rosary about your neck. These were not given for decoration. We cannot bear the blasphemies against Us much longer. We admonish you to save your soul and the souls of your loved ones. We are always with you, just raise your hearts in prayer to Us. Your prayers and sacrifices will be needed for your priests.
..............Yes, they will be needed to safeguard those who
represent Me in My House (Church) for the man of perdition (anti-Christ)
will enter higher places to render discord among those who rule
My House on earth. Have pity for those (clergy) who will fall
into his trap. Only prayer and mortification of the senses can
retrieve one of these souls. No one will be free from the assaults
to the Church by the one called anti-Christ unless you keep Me
with you (Eucharist), not as an occasional visit but as a daily
act of love. Satan has placed his disciples in your schools, your
government, you ways of entertainment, you means of communication,
all have been infiltrated! You can readily see My children, how
far he has progressed to destroy. We are gathering Our armies
from Heaven, yes, We are watching and will join in the eventual
combat for My Mother's Heart will heal when We triumphantly remove
the evil one from among you!! (vol I page 27)
I love you all, My children, My Son loves you, do not force Our
hand upon you! Yes, We see those whom satan has placed within
Our House. You know who you are! You went on the wide road. Throughout
your country We see pagan practice! Who led them into such vile
practices? There is a well laid plan to destroy My Son's House,
many have sold their souls to get to the head! Eternal damnation
is their destination! (vol I page 28)
JUNE 17, 1971 - Unless you pray for the souls that are
falling in My Son's house (church) you too, will be affected by
the disaster that lies ahead of you! Yes, My words were given
in the same vein many years ago, and they too, were not heeded.
Did you act upon them? No! You hid them from the world! What will
you do now? Yes,, I warned you many years ago that satan would
enter My Son's House! (church) but you did not listen. Now he
is there! Have pity for all men of sin! Have pity for those who
represent My Son and have fallen into the web of deceit of satan!
They will all be answerable to Us, more so, for they were given
the graces to fight this! .......Your prayers are sorely needed
for your priests, your cardinals, your bishops. The heaviest attacks
are upon those with the most influence in My Son's House. Yes,
there are those who have fallen to satan. They will drag many
other souls to hell with them. We do not want. (vol I page 29)
JULY 1, 1971 - I have warned the world. If they do not
listen they will suffer. There will be much suffering. If you
listened to Me this would have been avoided. You will see that
the Message is given to all the cardinals, the bishops and the
priests. The offenses against your God have not diminished. You
are to be judged by a meter of the sins against your God. You
will find the books containing beauties of prose and keep these,
My children, soon they will be taken from your counters. Remember
in your hearts the teaching of the Holy Spirit given to you, keep
them in your heart. The enemy will come and try to take them from
your heart. He (satan) continues on his road of destruction. There
will be little left to recognize. The children are entering a
spiritual void. We will not wait until they are lost to Us. The
Rabat is the Teacher of Light and Life but don't be fooled by
those who foul their garments! You will receive much antagonism
from the clergy. Prepare yourself! We are at your side always.
There is nothing to fear for you will carry the Truth for Us to
the peoples. (vol I page 29)
JULY 25, 1971 - Everything about you has been created by
satan to destroy your soul, to turn you from God; you will not
have both. You will be subjected to mockery, but walk with your
eye on the sky and your heart in Heaven, for then you will be
on the straight road to the Kingdom. You have shouldered your
cross well. There are many agents of satan among you tonight.
You will learn. Veronica, by experience and much wisdom in suffering.
These disturbances are not the mere pranks of children but the
well planned acts of satan. He has sought to stop tonight's Rosary,
but he does not realize the graces I give to My priests in the
light. Many cast stones at My Son as He walked about for the Father.
Many also mocked Him and laughed in derision. This will be the
road for all disciples of My Son as your earth proceeds into deeper
darkness of spirit. Michael fought a good battle for you this
evening, My child. (vol I page 31)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1971 - What can you expect Us to do before
We will allow you, Our representatives, here on earth, to drag
innocent souls with you to perdition indoctrinated with evil by
you? Oh, mournful heresy! You bring your own destruction upon
you! The few must carry the load. I would not call this burden
on you, My children, those who remain true, but remember the souls
you can still save in these latter days! (vol I page 35)
OCTOBER 7, 1971 - You will wear your Rosary and remain
close to My Son's tabernacles throughout the world. Spread not
your time questioning the ethics or the reasoning of mere man
who used My Son's House, but retire within the spirit and come
to My Son in His House looking at Him through the spirit not through
worldly eyes. He will always be there in His House. Our lawfully
ordained priests will always have the power to bring My Son in
physical body to you. The trappings as such, placed on the procedure
by man are of nothing, for you will live in the spirit concerned
not with aspects of worldliness and decoration now, for in truth
the destruction and removals in My Son's House are but symptoms,
indications of the major illness in My Son's House, caused by
the entrance of the evil one who you know as anti-Christ, the
adversary of satan and darkness. (vol I page 38)
DECEMBER 7, 1971 - Prayer, sacrifice, atonement! Pray for
the light; pray for all clergy. My Heart is filled with tears
at the numbers fast going into darkness. Will they not recognize
the evil that has entered upon My Son's House? (church) Our clergy
must read Our Bible. They no longer find the Revelations in Our
Book of Light and Life. Remember, My children, the day will come,
after much suffering, when My Son will return to set all right
again. Persevere against the forces of evil that now enshrouds
your earth. Be nourished by the presence of My Son among you (Eucharist).
Hold back the darkness! (vol I page 40)
DECEMBER 31, 1971 - Many who wear the habit have fouled
their garments and have become false teachers. These you will
know by their efforts. *Pray for the Light! ................*Our
Lady said by their efforts; fruits , you will know them.) (vol
I page 41)
FEBRUARY 1, 1971 - To all My bishops and priests of the
world: I ask you now; shall you say (to Me): My teaching is pure
in Your sight. Remember: You will stand before Me and can you
say that your teaching is pure in My sight??? And shall I cast
you out as venom from the vipers, into the eternal flame of damnation!(vol
I page 43)
JUNE 8, 1972 - You are gnawing at the structure of My House (Church); Judas's within My House! There are many Judas's within My House! Turn back Romans! The sword is poised!......
The facts and truth must be told. Those who are holy will be given
the light to recognize the Truth. Evil has fallen upon the holy
men of the Church. Pray for the cardinals and bishops; pray for
all priests! Many have gone into darkness. Pray for them. .......There
are many offenses being committed against the purity of (sacredness)
the Holy Mass. Half-naked practices of worldly music and pagan
dancing are being condoned by the priests! It is too late to condone
these offenses to God. You call down punishment! (vol I page 53)
JULY 15, 1972 - The world is now in deep darkness, I see
the candles burning now; they will lead the sheep out of the darkness.
You will pray and make many sacrifices for the recovery of My
Son's representatives (priests). Many have succumbed to the evils
of the flesh. Many will go down the road of damnation and take
others with them. (vol I page 56)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1972 -Your children are the misled victims
of bad example; bad example of your teachers, bad example of many
men in the House of God, bad example by your government and your
schools. Satan rules your acts now, but he shall not capture you
all, for I have given you the plan for your salvation numerous
times. Before these trials are over you will all have had the
chance to make your choice, and if you fall, it will be of your
own will! Stand forth, My children! Defend the Cross of My Son!
Stand forth in Truth! Do not succumb for your temporary pleasures
and riches of the world. (vol I page 65)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1972 - My Son's representatives (priests)
do not read the Book of Life (Bible). Instead We find that they
are bringing into their minds the evils of the world, of satan!
You cannot gain the world on earth and enter into the Kingdom.
There is no bargaining!...........We see many sitting in conference
in My Son's House, talking idle words that are destructive and
not constructive! Better they get down on their knees, now and
pray, do penance, strip their bodies; starve out the demons that
have entered them! (vol I page 66)
OCTOBER 2, 1972 - Many in the house of God have been misled
to accept teachings of an untruth. Falsity has been covered by
rationalization and learning of modernism and humanism! You will
find, My child, this well-laid plan has corrupted many! (vol
I page 67)
NOVEMBER 1, 1972 - I am truly the Mother of Sorrows! I
look upon the numbers of My children who are engaged in conflict.
Needless conflict among brothers. While you engage in temporal
dispute the enemy of your God takes his advantage! We gather the
prayers of Our beloved children to take to the gates for release
of those who are waiting..........There are many who have been
forgotten, My children! A little sacrifice on your part would
release one of these waiting souls..........Your clergy, the ministers
of your God, are forgotten in these dark chambers. See, My child,
the countless souls who are waiting to be released; you are surprised,
My child, to see that they are ministers of My Son's House. A
human has no rock when he is working for the salvation of his
soul. He must go down the path of every human. I ask, My children,
for more prayers for your departed clergy..........(vol I page
69)
Many in the House of God have accepted their blindness. When a
man of God falls from grace he can be blinded to the truth! His
way back will be one of heavy penance! Seek and ye shall find
the road back! Travel on your side road and you enter the abyss!
(vol I page 69,70)
FEBRUARY 1, 1973 - St. Thomas Aquinas: Rigid discipline
is necessary in the rule of all dedicated. Discipline and obedience
to the will of God and not the will of man must be returned upon
earth. Your offenses against your God and your destruction of
souls leading more onto the path into darkness have not passed
unnoticed by the Father. You have received your warning. Men of
God in the House of God, turn back from your ways of satan! Recognize
the hand of satan upon you! Starve your souls of the demons that
you have allowed to enter upon you! Return to discipline and the
rule! You will not take our words and rewrite them to satisfy
the desires of mere man! Have you placed yourself beyond the angels
They, too, were cast from the Kingdom for their arrogance. Intellectual
pride has led you down the wrong road. Many miters will fall into
hell. (vol I page 79)
Every man of God in the House of God must set himself forth as
an example of the living God. As a man of God chosen from the
world to lead the sheep, he has been endowed with the graces to
gather the souls. He can take these graces and cast them aside,
accepting to bargain with Lucifer, and with his power as a fallen
man of God, he has the power to take many souls with him into
hell! (vol I page 80)
MARCH 18, 1973 - My Son placed upon earth representatives.
They will counsel in truth or answer to the Father for their fallacies
for their abominations, for their half-truths, and for their falling
into the false modes of modernism and humanism which We find prevalent
among many. .........When a man has given himself and chosen from
out of the world as a priest of his God, he will be a priest for
life. (vol I page 85)
There is now in the world a satanic grouping of one-world planners.
They will eliminate slowly in their plan the Church of Jesus.
This will be accomplished in great haste, should the Seat of Peter
be abandoned at this time..........All clergy who do not accept
the truth and follow their vocation with pride and godliness as
representatives of their God shall meet the fate of the fallen
angels. ...........Confusion and delusion are the work of satan.
You have been given the truth, and you will be guided in the truth
if you remain close to My Son. (vol I page 86)
You will all continue your acts of sacrifice and penance for the
clergy because they will be sorted as sheep and goats. The hierarchy
will also be given the same test. All that is rotten will fall,
until the Church and House of God will be restored to the original
plan of the Father. (vol I page 87)
MARCH 25, 1973 - Many of Our dedicated have fallen in line
with the false maxims of modernism. Our hearts are truly saddened
at the blindness that has entered into the hearts of many in the
House of God...........A duly ordained priest in the House of
God shall not remove his habit. He shall not take the badge of
honor of his vocation from him. In doing thus, he subjects his
soul to contamination from worldly influence. ...........Do you
not feel honor for having been chosen from a multitude of souls
to be representative of your God upon your world? Have you shame
for your vocation? Woe to the man who turns his eyes and heart
upon the world and adopts the maxims of the world, all creation
of satan! (vol I page 90)
St. Robert Bellarmine: Why do we find these abominations in the
House of God What is the new modernism you claim so constructive
in the House of God, while we see destruction about us and the
loss of souls to the King of Heaven? Arrogant man! What are you
calling down upon yourself bit your own destruction? Lovers of
pleasure! Fornicators without conscience! Even among the men of
God! what punishment do you call down upon yourselves! You who
should stand forth as an example to your flock have led them from
the road!!............The greatest of punishments of eternal banishment
will be given to those who have abandoned their vocation, led
astray, but with self-will, by the plans and guile's of satan.......
(vol I page 91)
APRIL 14, 1973 - Many of Our teachers have given themselves
to lust and pleasures of the flesh. This has not been hidden from
the Father. And those who have been chosen from the world as leaders
in the House of God shall be answerable to the Father for their
false direction of the sheep. (vol I page 95)
JUNE 8, 1973 - St. Theresa: You must hasten, my sister,
to make known the sorrow of Jesus at the deportment of many of
His dedicated in the houses of God. They must not follow the ways
of the world, for they lead surely down the road to destruction.
They must now lower their skirts to the ground. They must return
to lives of piety, poverty, and chastity. Many are giving themselves
to the pleasures of the world. Many have brought scandal into
the House of God. Pray for them, my sister; pray much, for many
souls are being misguided. Pray, my sisters and my brothers, for
all the priests in the House of God. They are in need of much
prayer. Only you, in your goodness of heart and love of the Father,
must act now to save them. (vol I page 107)
JUNE 16, 1973 - See, My child, the heavy sword that man
has placed within My Heart. This sword has been placed there by
the men of God who have chosen to set up their own rule within
My House. This sword shall be taken out by Michael and be brought
upon the world to cleanse you and to force your return to the
ways of your God! (vol I page 109)
JULY 15, 1973 - The shepherds, Our representative in your
world, will lead their sheep with firm discipline and faith, faith
in the light. They will remove all destructive minims of modernism
and humanism from their teachings. Suffering is purification.
The world is filled with soul-destroyers. Discard, cast off these
evil trappings and clothe yourself in sackcloth. Go forth through
the world as pilgrims so that you may return eventually to the
Kingdom from whence you came. (vol I page 116)
AUGUST 5, 1973 - Many prayers are needed now, for many
in the House of God have chosen to leave the road. Pray, My children,
pray much that they return and lose their blindness. The plan
of satan is like the web of a spider, going in all directions
through the House of My Son. (vol I page 119)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1973 - Obedience, My child, places many restrictions.
You will understand that many pastors, many men of God, face restrictions.
It may not be of their decision......... However, a guide to clergy
and lay people, My child, is truth. You will not sacrifice in
any way your soul for the things of your earthly world. Man has
one master only, the God who created him and his universe. Man
will answer to only his Master........... Be it clergy, man of
great gain and renown, or the poor of earth, you will have one
thing in common, My child, you all must stand before the Father
for judgment, and you shall be separated like sheep and goats,
for many are called, but few are chosen. (vol I page 130)
OCTOBER 6, 1973 - You ask, My child, about the state of
soul of the priesthood. This, My child, is not for you to question
or judge. A human being he is, yes. Subject to error, yes. Subject
to fall, yes. But still during the Consecration and when he hears
you in the confessional, the Holy Spirit comes down upon him,
using him as an instrument to bring absolution to you. (vol I
page 140)
NOVEMBER 24, 1973 - The plan for your salvation has been
given in countless places through many seers throughout the world.
Our words have fallen upon hardened hearts and deafened ears.
The sheep have been misled and led astray by those who should
have provided a shining example as representatives of the Father.
A full measure of penance will be given to all those who hold
the responsibility for the fall of young souls. None will escape
this heavy punishment. (vol I page 144)
When those who represent My Son in His House understand
your mission upon earth as a voice-box for Heaven, the full
recovery of souls before the cleansing will be accomplished.
It is with sorrow of heart that I must make it known to
you that many will die in the great flame of the Ball of Redemption.
Those counted to be saved are in the few. (vol I page 145)
All of the trials of the past set upon earth have passed unnoticed
as coming from the Father. Therefore, the Father plans to
awaken mankind and those who have fallen asleep in His House
by a great Warning. And should this not be instrumental
in the recovery of more souls to Heaven, then the Chastisement
will not be long in coming. (vol I page 146)
FEBRUARY 1, 1974 - Pray much for your priests. Many have
fallen from the road. Many, and, My child, but many are making
their way fast into the abyss. And many follow them like sheep
to the slaughter. Even those will be saved if there are enough
prayers and sacrifices made for them. (vol I page 161)
FEBRUARY 10, 1974 - I have a word of direction for all
whom I have chosen to represent Me in My houses throughout the
world. You must beware that satan now is loosed within My House.
Do not fall into his web. I have placed in your hearts the truth,
you will go forth as true directors of souls. You cannot destroy
the souls entrusted to you, by misdirection. Pray for the lights,
and you will be given the way. ...............Delusion, delusion!
O heresy, mournful heresy! That I should see this day come when
I shall have to intervene with a Chastisement that will claim
many souls unprepared. My Mother has begged the Father through
many earth ages to hold back this Chastisement. But I must tell
you it is not long in coming. My Mother has shed many tears. My
Heart has been pierced by the sins of mankind. ................Have
I sacrificed Myself in vain for you? How have you repaid Me through
the Father? I ask nothing but your love. Do not give yourselves
to satan. Return to Me! Accept the graces I give you, or you will
be lost. (vol I page 169)
MARCH 18, 1974 - Many prayers are needed for the recovery
of the representatives in My Son's House. Many examples are poor.
Without the number of prayers needed to balance the scales and
acts of reparation from the children of earth, there will be placed
upon the seat of Peter one who will put and place souls in the
House of God into deep darkness. Satan has poisoned many minds,
My child. Those who have the power to save, are now using this
power to destroy. (vol I page 170)
Listen well, men in the House of God, and man in his lay life
upon earth: Your actions have been tolerated but they have not
gone by uncounted. You will make atonement for each soul that
you have sent back to the Father, with its mission unfulfilled.
Your world shall go through a great crucible of suffering, suffering
that has not been seen since the time of Noah or before the time,
for the fire shall descend upon your earth. Skin, flesh will dry
up and blow off the bones as if it had never been. Many eyes will
see and still not believe, so strong is the hold of satan upon
many. ............You will eat of My Flesh and drink of My Blood
in My Houses, or you will not be with Me. Do not cast aside My
House because of the values of man. My representatives will bring
My Body and Blood to you during the consecration. Do not judge
My House by the standards of man, but woe unto that day when you
can no longer receive My Body and Blood! (vol I page 172)
Man will weep, man will gnash his teeth in sorrow. It is through
the merciful heart of the Father that I have been allowed to come
to earth as a Mediatrix between God and man. Do not cast Me aside;
do not send Me away, for if you do, you will lose souls, and you
as teacher and representative of My Son shall enter the kingdom
of satan. Woe unto the leaders who use their rank to destroy the
fold. You shall not lead the soul to the slaughter. ...........Save
yourself and the souls of those you love in the Merciful and Sacred
Heart of My Son, present in all the tabernacles of the world.
I repeat anew. Do not judge My Son's House by mere man, for, when
you receive, the words you see, My child, is Eucharist, you receive
My Son when He is given to you, brought to you by the legally-ordained
priest chosen by My Son, though sadly many now go on the dark
road, chosen by My Son to bring His body and blood to you. (vol
I page 173)
St. Pious X: Yes, my child, I do not have many opportunities to
speak to the people of earth, but in this time of great anxiety
and great darkness upon earth. I wish to make it known to those
who represent the Father and the Church of the Son that they must
restore discipline. They must not surrender to the modes of the
world; this being the errors of modernism, humanism. ............
Strength in the Holy See! Man wearing the robes of a cleric must
be excommunicated so that he may not contaminate the world with
errors of modernism. You shall not remain with a soul when there
are millions and thousands of souls to be saved. (vol I page 174)
MARCH 24, 1974 - Men who are representatives of My Son
in His Houses must now gather the flock and replenish their starving
souls. It is apparent, My child, that many care more for filling
their coffers than to feed their souls. The love of money has
destroyed many. The love for power, power for the things of the
world, has destroyed many. You cannot have both. (vol I page 179)
APRIL 6, 1974 - Accept fast and atonement. I have asked
in the past, many times, that the leaders and the teachers in
the house of God, the Church of My Son, that they fast and do
great penance, pray more, for they have allowed the demons to
enter upon them. The Father finds their leadership very poor and
He will judge accordingly, and all shall receive the fruits and
merits of their actions and their leadership. (vol I page 185)
Make it known upon earth, that those who should show the great
example of purity, piety, holiness, they have lost the road, and
with them, they will take many souls. Know that there are divisions
of supernatural existence. There is hell, there is purgatory,
and there is the Kingdom of the Father! (vol I page 186)
APRIL 13, 1974 - My child, do not be startled, it is the
voice of the Father that you will hear. Repeat His words: The
Holy Spirit has not entered into the hearts of the men of God.
They must starve their souls of the demons which they have allowed
to enter upon them. They are teaching in great error. Many have
fallen for the love of money. Many will take souls into the abyss
with them. Turn now from your plan of wickedness; destroy the
Vicar and you will destroy yourselves, for you will hasten Me
to send upon you the Ball of Redemption. (vol I page 189)
MAY 22, 1974 - You see, My child, why I ask that you call
for the prayers for your priests. Without your prayers, many will
spend years, many years of purging in the second stage. (vol I
page 200)
MAY 30, 1974 - My child, you will go forward with the Message
from Heaven. Michael must be entered back into My Son's House.
Pray, pray much for the priests in My Son's House. Many have lost
their way. Many have been misled. Those who have the power are
using this to destroy many souls. Know that no man has rank, no
man can use his rank with satan in worldly life when he comes
forward for judgment before the Father. The veil is thin and the
cord is fine. It can be cut at any time. You can enter over the
veil at any time in the plan of the Father. .........Priests in
the House of God, have you forgotten your dedication? Can you
now stand forward and fight for My Son? Your errors, your laxity
and your carelessness have destroyed the Faith in the hearts of
the young. Parents, where are you while your children are on the
road to hell? Can you not close your doors from your world and
teach your children? Have you also given yourselves to the world
and satan? (vol I page 205)
JUNE 15, 1974 - We have asked all who are with My Son,
not to abandon his House. Do not judge His House, on the man who
has been governing it, your pastors and your clergy! For they
are only human, subject to sin even. Remember that the heart and
the true foundation of Jesus's House is the Eucharist, that you
receive in the Holy Communion. Woe unto that day, My child, when
this is even denied you! ................There is developing,
My child, in your country and the world, a most dangerous trend:
It is one of separation from the Peter, the head of your Church.
You will not bring about this separation from the Seat of Rome!
You have nothing to gain but everything to lose, for should you
go ahead with this plan of separation, you will lead unto the
road of the abyss, leading to the abyss, many souls. Woe unto
those pastors! Woe unto, the clergy who now set themselves up
as leaders to confuse, confound and mislead! (vol I page 213)
JUNE 18, 1974 - My child, make it known to Our priests
in My Son's Houses upon earth, Churches, that We want Our priests
to shine forth as pure examples of chastity and holiness. They
have been misguided in direction by many superiors, who also follow
like sheep to the slaughter, the misdirection of their superiors.
It is like a wheel turning, My child, with the fire slowly destroying
it. ..................The example that must be shown and given
to the children of earth by Our priests must set them apart as
representatives of My Son. They do not have any equal upon earth,
for their vocation is a special gift of God. We are sad, My child,
to look upon the darkness that covers the soul of many. (vol I
page 219)
JULY 25, 1974 - The Father will not tolerate the abomination
being committed in the Houses of God. Many of His dedicated are
being permissive in their approach to the salvation of souls.
You will not gain nor redeem souls by lowering the standards.
Many of Our dedicated, clergy and foolish maidens of the nunneries,
have given themselves to the world, the flesh and the devil. How
sad that such great graces could go by and be cast aside for the
temporary pleasures of the world. (vol I page 234)
I spoke, My child, of the elect. We refer to the elect as Our
dedicated clergy, men of God, chosen from the sheep to be the
shepherds. Satan has sent a great delusion upon your world. Satan
roams in the House of God. Our leaders of Our sheep, shepherds
of Our flock, will you stand before the Father and say that your
teaching has been pure in His sight? No-o-o! Many of your are
misleading! Many of you are misled and carry your error into the
souls of others! Awaken! Strip the blindness from your eyes and
hearts! Do not destroy souls for the acknowledgment of man! You
will not set up man as an idol to worship!.......All clergy must
not set themselves into the ranks of the ordinary man! A man of
God is not an ordinary man. He is a representative of My Son!
As such, he must be looked upon with respect but this respect
must be earned! (vol I page 235)
You will meet with great opposition from the clergy, My children.
It is sad but a fact that many have lost their way. Pray for them,
for they too can be recovered with your acts of sacrifice and
prayers. (vol I page 236)
AUGUST 14, 1974 - There is a great delusion and deception
in the world. You must make it known to My clergy that We grieve
much over the actions of many. They are leading many of Our sheep
onto the road to the abyss. Many do this in obedience; many are
misled but most of all, many are selling their souls to get to
the head. (vol I page 242)
It grieves Me to have to admonish those in My Houses throughout
your world to mend their ways which the Father finds most displeasing.
The individual state of My teacher's soul is of one concern, but
the misguidance of the numbers of sheep entrusted to his care
is the concern of all Heaven. The Father looks into your heart
and finds that many have been hardened. ..........There will be
no rationalization for sin! There will be no acceptance of modernization
of My word or My teachings! There is no reason, no absolute reason,
to find new ways and create new methods for bringing My word to
the multitudes. The plan was simply laid out to you. Therefore,
listen and learn a simple lesson. You are being warned that your
present actions are displeasing the Father and you will receive
a Chastisement in accordance and with measure of this displeasure.
We do not find that you are continuing in your lives prayer and
sacrifice, they are becoming a forgotten creed. I admonish you
now that you are not to set yourselves in as a common man. When
I chose you to represent Me as a priest in My House, you are not
to make yourselves a common man, for you will not bring the souls
into the Kingdom by joining them in their sin! Yours must be a
pure and shining example! You must follow your vows of chastity
and poverty. Among you, We find little of this being practiced.
You wallow in all the filth of mankind! You savor all the pleasures
of the world and you are breaking the rules of the Father! These
include the Commandments given to mankind! Wake up now, there
is not much time left for you to make atonement!. (vol I page
244)
The mercy of the Father is great. None will be lost if he will
turn now from his present course. Return My House to its state
of a firm foundation and mend the cracks that you have wrought
into the walls! Bring My sheep, gather them back into My Houses!
No longer disperse them with your example! You will not change
My words! You will not change My direction! You will stay on the
narrow path and you will bring My sheep onto this path, or you
will answer to the Father and be condemned as such for having
destroyed the sheep entrusted to you. (vol I page 245)
AUGUST 21, 1974 - Modesty must be given by example to the
children! You have brought into My House all manner of whims and
fancy, giving in to your carnal natures! Will you stand before
Me as My representatives and say that your teaching has been pure
in My sight? I shall spit you out and cast you into the fires!!!
You fool no one! The Father sees into your heart! Or have you
cast the Father aside completely, blinded yourselves with the
pleasures of the world; for the gain of money? Shall I be sold
again as I was, with thirty pieces of silver? You are selling
Me! (vol I page 250)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1974 - You must hasten, My child, as the time
grows short, to warn Our clergy that they must not follow the
plan of satan. There is a great delusion sent upon them. In the
ranks of Our clergy and in the ruling bodies of My Son's Houses,
there are many who have fallen to satan. Can I deny this truth
and allow you to go as sheep into the slaughtering pen? No, My
children! My voice cries out from your Sacred Grounds. I have
been sent throughout the world as a Mediatrix between God and
mankind. I have been shut out of many places. My voice has not
carried far. However, My children, the awakening will be
soon and it will be a sad day and night for many.............Many
follow because they are misled, My child. When they are
given the knowledge of the truth and the blindness is removed
from them, they too, will come into the light. Pray
much, for with prayer many souls will be recovered. These
prayers must not be without acts of sacrifice and works. For
what good are good words without work? For these words, unless
they go forward to mankind, it is, My child, like placing meat
on a dead man's grave. (vol I page 252)
The greatest knowledge, My child, is the eventual victory and
reign of My Son upon earth. There will be great trials. Many will
fall by the wayside, unable to carry their crosses. Many will
choose the easy road. But keep a steady course, for My Son is
at the help. Know, My child, that the Bark of Peter flounders,
but My Son is at the helm. Those who are asleep will be
awakened. Pray for those in darkness that they may come
into the light, My child. (vol I page 258)
OCTOBER 2, 1976 - It is only to deceive and destroy the
soul that the agents of hell, the followers of the prince of darkness,
will try to convince you with honeyed words and the power of their
rank, that there is no hell! Oh, My children, how sad that you
are following this road! Blindness! Blindness of the spirit! How
soon many will find the fires of H-E-L-L engulfing them! (vol
I page 275)
OCTOBER 6, 1974 - I accept the torments which are heaped
upon Me by an ungrateful generation. You will not cast aside the
knowledge of the supernatural! You will not cast aside the truth
of Faith and set up a faith based on the immorality of man! No!
You will retain the Faith and Tradition as given to you, not making
changes that cater to the basic carnal nature of mankind! You
are misleading Our sheep! Pray! Get down on your knees and pray!
You will gain nothing by socializing. You have idolized money
and become money changers in My Son's House! ........... My Son
shall fling you out of the temples again! Moneychangers in the
House of God! Destroyers of the Truth! Turn back now for your
judgment will be far grater than those given to an ordinary man,
for you as a priest of God have been chosen by the Father to represent
My Son and as such your judgment for misleading and denying the
basic truth of your Faith will be far greater. (vol I page 280)
NOVEMBER 1, 1974 - None shall place their hands upon His
Body! My Son has given you in trust those He has chosen among
mankind to represent Him; your priests. None other shall carry
My Son to mankind! You shall not defile His Body by giving Him
into the hands of women, or those that have not been prepared
by the Father as legally ordained priests in the houses of God!
Laziness, pre-occupied with the world and with the pleasures of
the flesh! Return to your habits and set an example as a man of
God in the House of God; an example that will gather the sheep,
not scatter them! (vol I page 288)
Hasten, hearken and listen, My dedicated. I speak to you with
great urgency. There is great darkness that has entered upon the
hearts of many of Our dedicated. Remove this blindness from your
hearts. You have only one course to follow, that is the truth,
in the light. This has been given to you with your ordination.
Do not cast it aside. A great measure, a great share of responsibility
will be allotted to Our dedicated for the fall of souls under
their care. ...........I must caution you that a great delusion
has entered upon your world. Do not follow in the ways of man,
for he has set himself up with an idol. Remain humble, charitable,
in your approach to your sheep. Arrogance and pride shall send
man from the narrow road to the Kingdom. Intellectual pride has
cast many into hell. The warning I give you must not be taken
lightly. There is much being perpetrated in My House that offends
the Father greatly. (vol I page 290)
NOVEMBER 20, 1974 - Many arms will be sent in the battle
ahead. You ask, My child, about the establishment of another community.
You will be directed properly in the future. Have patience, My
child. It will appear before your very eyes. One step at a time..........Veronica:
Our Lady refers to the establishment of an Order..........Our
Lady: This Order will be founded on basic Tradition. This Order
will gather those of true spirit. This Order will be composed
of both men and women, and a cloistered convent. The means will
be sent to you all by the Father. It will be a refuge in the time
of trial for many. This refuge will be located, My child, in your
country, the United States. (vol I page 296)
NOVEMBER 23, 1974 - There is in your country and the world
a great conspiracy of evil. You will pray much and make many sacrifice
for the recovery of the souls of many who have lost their way.
Sitting upon their heads are the mitres of, mitres of authority,
My child. It is only because there are few who pray for them.
Remember, My child, do not forget your clergy, for many shall
go deep into the abyss, and spend many years in purgatory because
they have no one to pray for them. Your priests need many prayers.
Many are misled and many have sold their souls to get to the head.
My children, wake up! What do you gain if you gather your treasures
in the world, and store none in Heaven? You will leave the world
with nothing and if you come to Us without merit We must reject
you. And you will be cast into the fires or spend many long years
purging yourselves in the land of waiting. (vol I page 298)
You must all stand firm in your faith. Do not abandon My Son's
House, Church, know that you must not judge My Son's House by
the actions of man. Man has been created by the Father, and man
in his human nature can fall, My child. Do not judge My Son's
Church by the actions of man. Know that regardless of the actions
of man, My Son will always be there in the Eucharist. A duly ordained
and consecrated hand of a legal representative, your priest, will
always be able to bring to you My Son's Body and Blood in the
Eucharist. The enemies of My Son wish to take this truth from
you. They say that the Mass is not valid. That is not true, My
child. Through the power of the Father in the Spirit, My Son comes
to you. He comes to you physically and spiritually in presence.
Do not accept the error of you day that this is a story or myth,
My children. I assure you My Son is there with you. (vol I page
299)
DECEMBER 6, 1974 - Priests in the Houses of My Son, why
do you waste your time trying to disprove My warnings to the world?
You are rationalizing My supernatural manifestations. .......Pride
and arrogance has set many onto the road to destruction, soul
destruction! It is sad, My child, that those who have the most
power to do good, are using this power now to destroy the young
souls. (vol I page 301)
The materialism and modernism that man claims as his way of life
now is setting him on a fast path to destruction. Make it known,
My child, to the world that your life, all life, upon earth, is
but a short duration. All must pass over the veil and be judged.
Satan has set darkness, darkness of the soul, among you. His deception
has claimed many. Many of Our mitres have fallen to this deception.
Yes, My child, there are not enough prayers nor sacrifices for
your priests. (vol I page 302)
Warn Our Priests, My children, pray for them and verbally send
Our warning to the world. Write it, speak it, My children. They
are preparing themselves for their destruction. They are setting
fast onto the road for the full destruction of mankind. (vol I
page 305)
Mercy and charity is not practiced among you! Awaken now from
your blindness! My clergy, you are swimming fast down a current
that will take you over into the abyss! Return to My teachings
of truth! They are simple in knowledge! But they are truth! Scatter
My flock and I shall gather you and cast you fast headlong into
the abyss! (vol I page 306)
DECEMBER 24, 1974 - Priests in the Houses of My Son, why
do you waste your time trying to disprove My warnings to the world?
You are rationalizing My supernatural manifestations. Pride and
arrogance has set many onto the road to destruction, soul destruction!
It is sad, My child, that those who have the most power to do
good, are using this power now to destroy the young souls. (vol
I page 307)
Mercy and charity is not practiced among you! Awaken now from
your blindness! My clergy, you are swimming fast down a current
that will take you over into the abyss! Return to My teachings
all truth! They are simple in knowledge! But they are truth! Scatter
My flock and I shall gather you and cast you fast headlong into
the abyss! (vol I page 312)
DECEMBER 28, 1974 - Many will sell their souls to get to
the head! A religious who keeps a penny, My child, shall not be
even worth this penny! (vol I page 313)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - I ask as your Mother, Our priests,
your clergy, to look into their hearts! Shall they stand before
My Son and say that their teaching has been true in His sight!
Woe to the clergy who have fouled his garments! His badge of honor
has been cast aside! It is an outward appearance of his inner
soul! Little by little, step by step, the foundation is whittled
back by Our clergy! They have been deluded by satan..........The
foundation is My Son! He has given you the Truth! He has sent
to you many prophets with the Message from Heaven. Why have you
chosen to close your hearts to the Message? (vol I page 320)
My child, please, you must make it known to Our clergy that they
are defiling My Son's Body in many ways! Disrespect and dishonor!
How many tears have I shed at the sight! Only consecrated hands
shall give and bring My Son to the peoples of earth! Legally ordained
and given the Holy Spirit, the clergy, chosen by the Father, to
bring His Son to you! Unclean hands shall not touch My Son's Body!
You must not allow My Son to be defiled any longer! No children
shall carry My Son's Body in the hands! Know, My child, only one
exception can be made! When a legally ordained priest is unable
to reach the dying, he will send his deacon to bring My Son to
him! But only in severe trial and need, I say! Only to the dying!
All others, My child, will be given the needed grace if they pray...........If
Our clergy become deluded by satan and lax in their responsibility
to My Son, they will be set in judgment before the Father for
their part in the defilement of My Son's Body!............You
must warn My clergy, My child, with your Message. We are not pleased
by the manner in which they honor the Son of God. (vol I page
321)
With your prayers, My child and My children, even the clergy will
receive the strength to fight for the truth; to fight for My Son,
to fight for the souls! (vol I page 322)
FEBRUARY 1, 1975 - I have asked in the past, My children,
that you read he Book of Life; the Bible, it will be a source
of strength and knowledge to you. If you are knowledgeable, you
will not fall into error. Error has entered upon My Son's House
because My Son's representatives, the clergy have given themselves
to the world. They must return to a life of prayer and dedication
of the spirit. Our sheep are starving. (vol I page 329)
There is a great means of restoration of My Son's House. It is
a simple way but it will bear fruit. Our clergy must return to
a life of prayer. You shall not gather your sheep by going among
them and lowering your standards. (vol I page 330)
Pope John: Would you, My child, recognize me if I removed these
garments? No, you would not. This is fair example to the clergy
of the world. You will not be recognized by the Father if you
remove your garments either............Listen carefully, My child,
and repeat after Me. This Message is for the clergy. You not
change My House to cater to the basic sinful nature of mankind.
Man must change for the good. Man must make his change to please
his God. .........The representatives of My House, will not change
to please mankind. Discipline must be returned to My House. You
who have set yourselves in disobedience to Our Vicar, will answer
for your discretion to the Father. You have been given the time
to make amends and atonement for your many sins against your rule.
You will not bargain My House for worldly gain. The cost is too
great for you are counting this gain in the loss of My sheep!
Restore My House! Or you shall fall completely and from the ashes
shall rise the Kingdom. (vol I page 332)
FEBRUARY 10, 1975 - If you, My children, read the true
Book of Life, your Bible, you will find that many warnings were
given by Our prophets to you; warning of these days that you are
living in. You were to beware of false prophets and false teachers.
They will come to you as angels of light. With ravenous hearts,
they will be members of the synagogue of satan. Do not be fooled,
My child, by those who have fouled their garments. We in the Kingdom,
have had Our hearts wrenched by the knowledge that many of Our
clergy have destroyed their vocation! They have brought dishonor
and disrespect to their vocation. Pray for them, for satan has
set himself to claim them. I am, My child, truly a Mother of great
sorrow! (vol I page 335)
MARCH 22, 1975 - Yes, My child, it is a sad but true fact
that many have given Him again to the despoiler. There are within
your country many churches of the adversary, satan. You must not
take the Body of My Son in your hands! You open the door for the
entrance of evil spirits to defile My Son's Body! The consecrated
fingers of a duly-ordained man of God, the priest, shall place
My Son into your mouth, and you must absorb His Body with goodness
and love. (vol I page 347)
You must in the time given to you make a complete reversal of
your ways that offend the Father much. You do this not for mankind
in his earthly life but for the salvation of souls. Awaken from
your slumber, leaders! You have fallen asleep. You have been lulled
into darkness because you have given yourselves to the pleasures
of the flesh! As leaders of Our sheep, My clergy, do not be misled
by your modernist and your humanist! You are being led into the
darkness!! A deep darkness covers your world! You will know the
hand of the Father upon you! (vol I page 348)
MAY 28, 1975 - St. Francis: My child, Veronica, we despair
in Heaven for we do not see the beads of prayer being fingered
often in our monasteries. .........Many of our Brothers of the
Orders, have given themselves to worldly living, My child. They
do not know that they have fallen into the snare of satan.......The
simple life, My child, is the best for the dedicated......The
dedicated, those who have accepted a vocation, must live only
as human beings in the world but must accept the spiritual...........Our
brothers of the cloth, My child, have rejected the supernatural.
They are running fast onto the road to perdition. Pray for them,
My child. The simple rule is all that can keep them from falling
into the abyss. ......Discipline must be returned to the Orders......Many
must now retire from the world that has been given to satan.........Know
now, my brothers and sisters of religious orders, you will be
mocked, you will be scorned but you will please the Eternal Father
and receive your reward in the Kingdom. Shall you trade your eternal
life with God the Father for a few short years of plenty upon
your earth? Many have sold their souls to get to the head. (vol
I page 371)
JUNE 5, 1975 - Yes, My child, I spoke to you of the evil
ones who have infiltrated into the clergy. They are not entering
with dedication and spirits of light but they are bringing in
the spirit of darkness. By their fruits will you know them, My
child. I have asked you to be not fooled by those who wear the
garments of the dedicated but have fouled their garments. You
must pray more for the light and recognize the faces of evil about
you, My child. ...............The abominations taking place in
My Houses throughout the world are being not condoned by your
Holy Father, Pope Paul. The arrogance of mankind in the clergy
have brought about many offenses in the Divine Service, offenses
to the Eternal Father. (vol I page 374)
The lukewarmness of many of Our clergy and the laity, the lay
peoples of Our Houses throughout the world, the churches, My child,
leave much to be desired! It is by their example that many souls
are being placed onto the road to perdition! ...........We find
in the leadership of Our Church, many who have fallen into darkness
of spirit! Many who have given themselves to the modes of the
world involved in the destructive following of humanism and modernism!...............Many
of your leaders of the past who were pure of heart, intention
and dedication, warned you of these errors! But you have turned
a deaf ear to their warnings for in your arrogance you seek to
build a new house upon your earth. (vol I page 375)
JULY 15, 1975 - Know a truth in fact. The Red Hat has fallen
and the Purple Hat is being misled! Look into your hearts, dedicated
men of God! Shall you stand before the Eternal Father and say
that your teaching has been pure in His sight!? Shall He cast
you, spit you from His mouth; as vipers into the flames of the
abyss? (vol I page 383)
Pray for your dedicated, your priests, and your sisters. Many
have gone fast into darkness of the spirit for they have chosen
to follow the modes of the world. Bring them quickly the Message
from Heaven. We do not wish one child to be lost to Us. (vol I
page 384)
AUGUST 5, 1975 - You must warn Our clergy that many are
being deceived. They must merit the respect of their flock by
their example and holiness. The more they enter into the world,
the less they will be of the spirit of light. Man must live in
the world but not be of the world. (vol I page 393)
The spirit of darkness has set upon mankind the separation of
the sheep from the goats. Many of your My clergy have given ourselves
to the world. You follow downstream into the abyss!! You are like
ducks, on midstream. (vol I page 395)
AUGUST 14, 1975 - Many prayers are needed for your clergy!
But for your prayers, many shall be lost to the Kingdom of God.
It is a fallacy, My children, that those who wear the garment
of teacher of the Light shall enter into the Eternal Kingdom.
They are still human, My children, and must make their way with
the cross, also. They need your prayers, as well as your children
and neighbors. It is an act of charity of heart to pray for your
pastors, My children. (vol I page 399)
SEPTEMBER 6, 1975 - There is no need, My child, for women
to rush into the Sacred Portals. There are enough throughout the
world, men, consecrated and chosen as Minister of the Eternal
Father, of the Body and Blood of His Son; to distribute among
mankind, His sacred Body. I have cried tears of great sorrows!
I am truly the Mother of Sorrows as I watch this constant desecration
of My Son's Body! (vol I page 409)
NOVEMBER 22, 1975 - I look upon all manner of abominations
being committed in My House. Do you think you will go much longer
without chastisements? Awaken from your slumber, My clergy! You
deceive no one! For your errors and your greed and your giving
yourselves to the flesh, succumbing to all of the creations of
satan, you gain nothing but an eternity in hell! The Eternal Father
will chastise those He loves. Many shall die in the great flame
of the Ball of Redemption.............I repeat: You will master
to make amends to the Eternal Father now. You will all go back
and read the words of My Mother given to you. All will come to
pass. None shall escape judgment. All will be held accountable
for their actions. All will be held accountable for their laxity
in the formation of the souls of the young. (vol I page 445)
You must warn your clergy, My child, that all of the modernism
and humanism that pervade now their lives have been created by
satan. It is part of the plan, the diabolical plan of satan, to
destroy My Son's Church upon your earth. ............I send to
My clergy, those whom I have given the grace to represent Heaven
upon earth, this warning: You must now return to your Traditional
Rites. You must restore My House from its crumbling exterior and
rotting interior. You must rebuild what you seek to destroy now!.........Many
who call themselves My chosen ones, have set themselves to destroy
from within. Your actions have not gone by unnoticed by the Eternal
Father. Errors deception, deceit, in the guise of sanctity and
piousness! You are unmasked before the Eternal Father. You shall
start little by little and repair the foundation, or you shall
be within and destroyed. (vol I page 446)
MARCH 18, 1976 - I repeat for your enlightenment again:
No woman shall stand in the Sacrifice as a priest. How dare you
set yourselves for a change created by satan! The plan of the
Eternal Father has been made quite clear to you. Your father now
is not the Eternal Father of Heaven, but the father of all liars,
satan! My Son's Body, sacrificed for you, tortured for you, is
now being re-crucified in His own Church! (vol I page 477)
APRIL 10, 1976 - The sins of omission of many parents and
the sins of omission being committed by Our clergy have not gone
by unnoticed by the Eternal Father. Awaken from your slumber,
Our clergy, for We have looked upon you and found you wanting.
Look into your heart, examine your conscience well. The light
has been given to you, and you have permitted it to darken. (vol
I page 481)
MAY 15, 1976 - What can you, do now to recover? It is simple,
My children; turn back and start over with the foundation given
to you. You must bring respect back to your priesthood. You must
bring respect back to your Holy Father, Pope Paul VI. I have warned
you of all the manner of abomination, error and delusions that
have been set upon your. Listen, and act upon My warnings to you!
(vol I page 486)
The dedicated, those who have taken a vow of poverty, chastity,
and upholders of the Faith, whatever have you done to your Faith,
My children? You have made it, in your struggles, unrecognized
to many. You have sown confusion throughout your world with a
change. And what change but from satan, guided to destroy. The
foundation of your Faith is My Son, was My Son, and will always
be My Son. (vol I page 486)
MAY 26, 1976 - There will be established in the United
States a center. There must be a home for the priests who have
left their mission. They must not return to the world. (vol I
page 490)
JULY 15, 1976 - Clergy, followers of My Son, you who have
sought a vocation and were graced to be chosen from among mankind,
will you not gather Our straying sheep? Will you not gather My
lilies from the field and give them the waters of life for Us?
(vol I page 516)
JULY 24, 1976 - It is sad, My child, that there are so
many delusions and errors prevalent upon earth. The souls fall
into deep darkness, as they are misguided by Our clergy and those
who have cast aside the light to run fast headlong into the darkness.
(vol I page 511)
Man must be cautious in the manner in which he is trying to set
My Son's Church to right. There are many who are rushing headlong
into error and confusion. The priesthood will be step by step,
lesson by lesson. We cannot, My children, have instant priests
at this time..................You ask, My child, and I must give
you the facts...................My Son taught His priests, His
disciples, the Apostles, in the time He was upon earth. He infused
in them accumulations of knowledge that was supernatural in manner.
In your human mind and your human limitations, My child, you will
not be able to fully understand the ways of the Father. The twelve
disciples, Apostles, set down the rule, and they were taught in
truth, facts, and solid foundation............Man through the
ages became dissatisfied and filled with pride. He sought to bring
in, to enter upon the Bible his own interpretation of the wordings.
To the simple of heart, those who do not succumb to pride and
arrogance, the wordings are quite clear................A true
priest is a man who has been legally ordained; a true priest is
a man who will need extensive study to prepare him to be able
to understand and teach the truth. The first Apostles were given
this knowledge by Jesus; the descendants of Peter are given this
knowledge by the Holy Ghost. (vol I page 512)
It is only when these descendants of the priesthood do not pray
and have entered themselves into the world of humanism and modernism
that they no longer bring the light to the sheep. They scatter
the sheep in all directions, sowing confusion, abominations, fallacies,
and lies. And you ask, as did Pilate: What is truth? My Son is
truth, in God the Father and the Spirit. My Son is the light of
the world. If you make instant priests, what good is it without
the salt?...............My children, here is much to correct in
the procedures that man has chosen to right the wrong. Pray a
constant vigilance of prayer that satan does not enter upon the
good works. (vol I page 513)
AUGUST 5, 1976 - Do not judge your Church, My children,
by the standards of man, for a legally ordained priest, a man
who has been legally ordained, will be used by the Eternal Father,
through the Spirit, to bring to you My Son, His Body and His Blood,
which He is shedding in sorrow now for you. For all who travel
this pilgrimage of life, remain with My Son at the tabernacles
of your world, for he will be, and is, the true Bread of Life
for you. (vol I page 520)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976 - My child, I recognize your distress
in the weeks past. You have been allowed much trial and suffering,
for in a short and small time, My child, you have gathered the
feeling, the anguish, the sorrow of all Heaven when one who showed
great promise for the priesthood loses his way, succumbs to satan,
and has now power to destroy souls........... Woe, woe, woe to
the man who shall use his rank as teacher, the priesthood, to
destroy souls. The lowest ladder to hell could never be enough
for an abominable creature that has defiled his garments. ..........Pray
a constant vigilance of prayer now throughout your world. Restore
the proper teaching now in My Church, while you have this extension,
but of short duration, this extension of time before the great
trial. (vol I page 531)
OCTOBER 2, 1976 - In your country, My children, in your
seminaries in the United States and Canada, My children, and the
world, you have professors now so steeped in sin, they who call
themselves My Son's chosen priests, they are vile sons of satan
who are now rationalizing sin! There shall be no rationalization
placed upon sin. The commandments shall not be looked at objectively
and given to excuses, to reasoning to condone sin! No, My children,
it is the minds poisoned by satan that spread this filth and error,
this distortion of doctrine, this distortion of Tradition, and
this distortion of your Faith! (vol I page 544)
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - Your children, their hearts, their souls
are empty. They no longer have knowledge of the supernatural.
They are fast heading into a world of reasoning that permits sin
as a way of life. And why? Because you, as leaders have destroyed
the trust placed in you, you have betrayed Me and your Faith,
and as such, you command from Heaven your own destruction! Shall
you stand before Me, O Red Hat and Purple Hat, shall you stand
before Me and say that your teaching has been pure in My sight?
I say unto you. I will spit you out, as the vermin you are, into
the flames of eternal damnation! (vol I page 550)
NOVEMBER 20, 1976 - Woe, woe, woe to the man who casts
aside his role as a representative of My Son to accept silver
and gold, and in like manner, has sold My Son. His Church will
proceed through a great crucible of suffering, for a House in
darkness, My children, wears a band of death about it............My
child, it is not necessary that I give you names and dates, for
the guilty ones are well aware of their deception. The Red Hat
has fallen and the Purple Hat is being misled. (vol I page 556)
As in the time of Noe, there were sent to you voices crying out;
get ready and turn back before it is too late! As it was in the
time of Noe so it is now that many laugh, deride, mock, and close
their ears to these warnings. And why? Because in their blindness
they have been allowed by the Eternal Father to continue upon
their road as they fast give themselves to satan. But it is a
sad fact, and one that brings much grief to all the personages
of Heaven, that as they plunge faster into the darkness, those
with the power in My House, as representatives of Me, have chosen
to take souls with them onto their road to perdition. Amen, amen,
I say to you, that none shall escape this Chastisement. (vol I
page 558)
NOVEMBER 22, 1976 - My child, the greatest onslaught of
satan will be to the priesthood of My Son. With all the abounding
errors that are now raging throughout My Son's House, there can
be given to mankind the hope in their redemption with the coming
Chastisement. A great Warning will be given before the Chastisement.
Oh yes, My child, many will see and still not believe. (vol I
page 560)
My Son, His heart is torn asunder by His representatives in the
priesthood who now are Judas's in His own House. They consort
with the enemies of your God. In the manner of humanism and modernism
and ecumenism that has been designed from hell, man now is plunging
fast into making ready the full capitulation of My Son's Church
and the world under a dictatorship of evil. When the world and
My Son's Church becomes as one, when the evil men of the cross
have sought to destroy My Son within His own House, know that
the end is near at hand. I say unto you as your Mother, as you
sow so shall you reap! (vol I page 561)
DECEMBER 7, 1976 - Beware of those who parade as angels
of light, with ravenous hearts of wolves. I repeat, My children:
Beware of those who disport themselves in garments of the clergy,
but they have not received Holy Orders through the Holy Spirit.
(vol I page 566)
Veronica reads the following: The conduct of women during the
Holy Sacrifice of the Mass shall be one of silence. No woman shall
speak out during the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass. Women must wear
head coverings when they enter the House of God. The House of
God is a place of prayer, and not a meeting place or dance hall.
No woman shall speak from the pulpit. No woman shall enter the
ministry. (vol I page 567)
The world, the peoples of earth, My children, are in great darkness
of spirit. Were this darkness to reach only the lay peoples, there
would be not that much concern, My children, but now My heart
is torn to watch as those dedicated go deeper into darkness. It
is a scale that is graduating through leadership. The evil in
accelerating. Satan is poisoning the minds of many. Those in leadership,
who should know better, are now using their rank to destroy souls.
The measure of iniquity is the gauge, the scale, for the coming
Warning and Chastisement. (vol I page 568)
DECEMBER 24, 1976 - My children, the forces of evil are
gathering within the Eternal City of Rome. They exercise great
control over the human element, and satan now exercises great
control over the supernatural. The Eternal Father will allow him
his time, as you will be tested as mettle in the fires. Shall
you bend, in your free will, your human free will, shall you bend
the cross and distort it into a cross of mankind? Shall you bend
My Son's Cross? O evil men of the cross, whatever shall become
of you? (vol I page 570)
I must caution you to bar your doors to all but your immediate
family and very close workers. Beware of those who come to you
as angels of light with ravenous hearts. Beware of those who wear
the garments of sanctity, but they have soiled them by sin. The
Rabat, priest, is a teacher of life, My child, but do not be fooled
by he who has soiled his garment. (vol I page 571)
V O L U
M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977 - There are many novelties, there are
many abominations and offenses being committed in My Son's Houses
throughout the world. Man has given himself to experimentation
of humanism, and man has not learned from his past or listened
to his past Vicars, the Popes of old, who warned of the approach
of heresy and modernism. You were given the measures to be guided
by to prevent the entrance of the antichrist into your world and
into My Son's Church. But man of God, followers of the cross,
you cast the cross down and you stomp upon it! (vol I page 19)
MARCH 18, 1977 - Obedience, My children, what is obedience
when you become obedient to children of darkness, when you become
obedient to agents of hell? And those agents of hell now are loosed
upon your earth. They have now taken over human bodies, and they
have not stopped at the lay person, My child. They have entered
into the clergy. And how can this be, you ask, My child? Sin,
sin has entered into the hearts of the clergy. You must pray for
them. All who have the charity of heart must keep a constant vigilance
of prayer for them. The Eternal Father, in Rome, He looks upon
what is taking place now there. It truly rains teardrops from
Heaven! (vol II page 27)
APRIL 2, 1977 - You men who were formerly of the light
and have given yourselves to the darkness, you condone this foul
act of homosexuality. And why? As satan inspires you and directs
you, you go about looking for excuses for sin! You condone it
with permissiveness! You have taken the direction and the Commandments
of your God and you re-evaluate! You take them to your scholars
who have heads of fog, and in your masterly, worldly way, you
delude those of less learning to believe, because of you high-sounding
words and theses, and all manner of scholarly knowledge; you delude
those who do not have the God-given knowledge to believe your
rot! You even deny the truth of what the Eternal Father did to
Sodom and Gomorrah for the sin of homosexuality................You
who cry love your neighbor, do not twist the truth and say that
Sodom and Gomorrah fell because they were inhospitable! Oh, no!
I say unto you: Hospitality had nothing at all to do with this.
It was a manner of degrading debased sin, using a creation of
the Eternal Father for vile acts, animal acts, and far worse until
your filth and pollution has entered into the minds and souls
of the young. You defilers of mankind, the skin shall burn off
of your bones soon!
My children, if I could open to you a scene before all of what
is in store for mankind, I assure you, you would only too gladly
do all in your power to restore My Son's House to its former glory
and sovereignty. you would chase out the interloper, the heretics
and the satanist that have entered into the structures of My Son's
Church. Do not be fooled by those who wear the garments of clerics
and they have defiled them!...............Know, My children, that
you must pray a constant vigilance of prayer for Our priests.
And why? Many in wrong counsel shall lead your children to satan!
(vol II page 31)
APRIL 9, 1977 - My child, I weep tears of great sorrow
because of the desecration, because of the lack of piety, holiness,
and respect of the priesthood to My Son. As your earth years progress,
My children, Our clergy are going faster into darkness and taking
many with them; children of light becoming children of darkness............Yes,
My children, it is a true fact that only a few will be saved in
the final count. You will be fortunate if you can gather into
one room the true priests of My Son as the war rages, the war
of the spirits, a war far more disastrous than any created by
a human being in the past. (vol II page 34)
My children, what manner of abomination is being committed in
My Son's House? Can you not cry with Him, suffer with Him on His
way to the cross? No! Demons have entered into My Son's House.
They claim the human body to use them to defile My Son's House
until evil men of the cross are setting a church up, now, a church
of man with no angels guiding them, with no supernatural intervention
from Heaven guiding them. This church of man shall be built on
naturalism, modernism, and humanism............All who stand before
My Son as teachers in His House, shall they stand before Him and
say that their teaching has been pure in His sight? Will you stand
before Him, O clergy, and say that you have prophesied for Him?
And what did you do but bring in doctrines of devils into My Son's
House! He shall take you in your defilement and cast you into
the eternal fires of hell. (vol II page 35)
MAY 14, 1977 - The greatest sorrow that smites My heart,
My children, is the desecration to My Son's Body. These abominable
acts are being committed by His own in His Houses, His Churches
upon earth. I repeat again that none shall bring the Sacred Body
of My Son, His Body and Blood, to another but a legally ordained
priest with consecrated hands. I say, My children, consecrated
hands, blessed hands, washed clean by the Holy Spirit! No man
shall render excuses for defilement of My Son's Body. (vol II
page 38)
MAY 18, 1977 - When this battle is over, you will be most
fortunate, without prayer, if you will find one hundred true priests,
men of God, left among you. I say "true." (vol II page
45)
MAY 28, 1977 - The power of prayer is great. You must pray
for your priests. They do not have a special passport into Heaven.
They must also fight their way through the world to get there,
and they need your help as well. Give and it shall be given to
you, extend your charity of heart and you shall receive two-fold.
(vol II page 49)
JULY 25, 1977 - Retain all sacramentals in your homes.
And do not be misled by clergy who have cast off their habits,
outwardly and inwardly have cast away the true light. My children,
the habit was always a signification of holiness, piety, dedication
in My House, My Church. But, My children, do not be fooled by
those who have fouled their habits.............My children, you
will recognize the signs of your times. The evil has accelerated.
Satan has poisoned many minds, even in the clergy. It is now the
full responsibility of parents to be the leaders, the teachers
of their children. Satan has poisoned the minds of many in the
clergy and doctrines of demons are being introduced into My House.
(vol II page 70)
AUGUST 13, 1977 - There are many now walking the earth
who are shells of humans. They will no longer be called humans.
They will be called animals. They have given themselves to satan.
They have sold their souls to get to the head. And there are many
in the clergy that shall be shot dead. (vol II page 76)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1977 - In 1971 of earth years, My child, I
told you that the man of perdition had entered into the priesthood,
into the body of a fallen soul, priesthood. ...................Understand,
My children, you do not pray enough for your priests! They too
are human, and are subject to error and the deceits of satan.
They too can lose their souls to satan unless you pray for them
and do penance for them, and make sacrifices for them. They do
not have special passport to Heaven, My children. They have to
fight along the road filled with many thorns as you do. (vol II
page 80)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1977 - The man of perdition, 666, is here
now upon your earth. He has an army of ogres, who come in many
disguises. Recognize the faces of evil about you, they come as
angels of light, and many now are in the priesthood. Do not be
fooled by the garments of the priesthood, for some have been soiled................I
shall not admonish My clergy anew. My Mother has directed and
counseled you well to mend your ways, for many cardinals and bishops
shall fall fast into hell. And many who have been seduced by their
new modes of modernism and humanism shall go with them into hell.
No man shall escape a reward for his evildoing! No man shall excuse
his evildoing! The Eternal Father has looked into your hearts
and found you wanting. (vol II page 85)
OCTOBER 6, 1977 - Charity has grown cold in the hearts
of most. And those who profess a vocation in the clergy have become
neither lukewarm nor active, but they go downstream to their destruction
like ducks, neither caring whether the abominations destroy souls
in My House. They call forth the heavy hand of the Father upon
them! All manners of violations to all humanism and dignity is
taking place even within the portals of My Church, violations
against sanctity. (vol II page 94)
NOVEMBER 1, 1977 - My children, and I say My children,
though many have rejected Me, I say unto you, you must now turn
from your ways that have offended the Eternal Father much. The
heavy hand of Chastisement shall be placed upon you. I repeat
the words of My Mother to the clergy: Conform with the world and
you will die on the vine. I am the vinedresser. The vine is the
tree of life, eternal life. You were My branches. But this tree
now is being shaken, and all that is rotten shall fall! (vol II
page 98)
I repeat again and again that none but a duly ordained, legally
ordained priest in My Son's House shall bring His Sacred Body
in the Hose to another. Foul deeds are being committed upon My
Son's Body! And you allow them, neither caring.......(vol II page
97)
Clergy in My House, I have looked upon most of you and found you
wanting, for you have given yourselves over to all pleasures of
the flesh. You have become arrogant and self-seeking, neither
watching nor caring as your sheep scatter. Woe unto the man, whether
he be clergy or layman, who defiles the young!...........My children,
you must pray more for your clergy. They too receive heavy attacks
from satan. They have not been given a special passport to Heaven.
They need your help and your prayers.(vol II page 98)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977 - The priests are deceived, Our Lady
said, in Her Son's House; they are deceived. They do not realize
that satan has planned to dethrone them from their vocation. Little
by little satan seeks to remove the priesthood.................As
a representative of Jesus, a legally ordained priest must be the
instrument of God to bring the Body of Jesus to the multitudes.
Only in a severe manner must a man, and this severe manner being
the absence of a priest in the face of a death, then the priest
will allow a deacon, a man, not a woman, a deacon, a man in the
extremist emergency to take the Sacred Body of Jesus to a dying
person. And that will be the only time. (vol II page 102)
DECEMBER 31, 1977 - You leaders who carry My mark upon
you as high priests in My House upon earth, you have fallen asleep.
You have become, many, corrupters of souls. You have cast aside
your mission as representatives of your God. You have given yourselves
to the world, becoming sensual, prideful, arrogant and faithless!
When I return shall I find even a flicker of faith in your hearts!
(vol II page 113)
Shall you stand before Me, O priests in My House, and say that
your teaching has been pure in My sight? I shall cast you away
as vermin and I shall put you as spittle into the fires of the
abyss where you belong! For you have prostituted My Church! (vol
II page 114)
FEBRUARY 10, 1978 - My children, I have asked you not to
abandon My Son's house, His Church upon earth. But I must also
counsel you that you must recognize the faces of evil about you,
even in My Son's House. .................Regardless of the state
of the soul or the human body and its frailties in the body and
the nature of man in the priesthood, regardless of how he disports
himself upon earth, as a legally ordained priest, he will have
the power through the Holy Spirit to bring My Son's Body to you.
You cannot judge My Son's Church by those who call themselves
leaders, for they also in their human nature can be taken over
by demons, and they can be used by these diabolical forces to
destroy My Son's Church. (vol II page 120)
MARCH 25, 1978 - I have asked you once, I have asked you
again, My children, not to abandon your parish churches. It is
the plan of satan to shut the doors. Remember, My children, and
I repeat again, that My Son is with you in the Eucharist. He is
present with you in Body and Spirit. He will be brought to you
by a legally-ordained priest, a man of God. Do not judge My Son's
Church or its structure by the ways of man. The Spirit will work
miracles over the corruption of the man. A legally ordained priest
is a priest for life.............Please, My children, pray for
your priests. Many are being led astray. Discipline and the rule
must be followed in the priesthood. This brings great sorrow to
the Eternal Father and My Son to see the manner in which the priesthood
has cast aside the rule in the name of modernism and humanism.
(vol II page 135)
MAY 3, 1978 - My children, this is now the time for action
with prayer. In normal, semi-normal times, when even the clergy
could be labeled as pious and holy, satan set about to attack
My Son's Church upon earth. But as time went on even the clergy
gave themselves to the world, seeking not the graces from Heaven,
neither calling upon the Holy Spirit to guide them, but giving
themselves over to worldly pursuits leading to humanism and modernism
in My Son's House.............A greater measure of responsibility
will be given to the souls, the creatures. I find, My children,
no name that could describe the state of a fallen soul! And what
greater sorrow is there in Heaven but the sorrow of finding the
teachers who have given themselves over to the world. With itching
ears they are willing to experiment, looking for new doctrines,
flying high in their knowledge to Heaven, and many labeling themselves
as gods. Pagans they have become in their hearts, though they
have an exterior of piety; their lips, come forth the sound of
knowledgeable words, but I say unto you: Your words do not cover
the blackness of your hearts before the Father. (vol II page 141)
MAY 13, 1978 - We listen to Our clergy, and We do not hear
the words of God the Eternal Father coming from their lips. But
they go around to and fro, like chickens without heads, crying
peace, love and brotherhood. They have a semblance of piety outwardly,
but their hearts are dulled, their spirits are sickened by their
quest for power, money and the riches of the world and the comforts
of the world. (vol II page 146)
MAY 20, 1978 - Pray, My children, for your priests, your
bishops, your cardinals. Too few pray for them for in their awe
and their knowledge, they believed in the past, My children, that
these Hierarchy had a special passport to Heaven. No, My children,
they have a human nature also, and human frailties, and must be
protected by prayer and penance and sacrifice, and this means
the prayer, penance and sacrifice of others also, for them, in
your charity of heart, in your love of human nature that We hear
man speaking of as he falls into the errors of modernism and humanism.
True love lies in prayers and sacrifice for individuals, for when
you come over, the veil, I assure you, it is only love and prayers
that can follow you. (vol II page 151)
JULY 25, 1978 - The Messages from Heaven, My child and
My children, are given for all mankind. Much emphasis has been
placed through time on the Message to the clergy in My Son's House
for reason. They are being deluded and misled by satan..........This
has come about only because arrogance and pride has entered upon
them. They no longer pray but have succumbed to the errors of
humanism and modernism. Holiness must be returned to the vocation.
And this can only be acquired by restoring prayer in My Son's
House and especially the prayer life that is so lacking now in
the clergy. ...........My children, I beg you as your Mother to
listen to Me. I come to you with a warning, a warning for all
mankind, to turn back now from your sin. You must read your Bible,
the Book of Life. Do not conform to the world of its lying teachers.
For the word from the Eternal Father is this: Conform, O clergy,
and you will die on the vine! Conform, man of the world, and you
will die on the vine. (vol II page 173)
The clergy on earth, in all denominations, cannot give themselves
over for experimentation, change with errors. For many souls shall
be lost to Heaven. Clergy in My Son's House in Rome, under the
direction of the Seat of Peter, you must recognize that the world
is closing in upon you, and you will die on the vine if you conform
with it.............My children, continue to follow the counsel
of My Mother. All of the saints and the angels of Heaven shall
come with you to aid you in this war of the spirits. Soon My clergy
must make a decision; shall they build now a church of man and
replace My House upon earth. No angels are guiding their movements.
No angels shall rescue them from the pits of hell. Awaken, My
clergy, for your heads are in the clouds! (vol I page 175)
Where have the hearts from your vocation gone? You have sold your
souls to get to the head! For what? Each and every one of you
must answer for your time upon earth. Many of you will come over
the veil in a short time. Shall you be ready? Have you prepared
My sheep, My children? (vol II page 175,176)
Wear your sacramentals. Remain with Me at the tabernacles of My
Church throughout the world. I am with you. Do not accept the
challenge of satan by listening with itching ears to his new doctrines
of demons. I am with you. Though the conduct of My clergy is poor,
the doors are not closed to you yet! Join with Me at the tabernacles
of your church. Do not abandon this grace. You will need every
vestige of grace given to you in the days ahead, for many shall
fall in the battle............Pray, My children, for your clergy.
They are prisoners of the world, shackled to the love of the world.
They have placed, many of them, the world before the Eternal Father
and the plan in their vocation. ..........Parents must safeguard
the lives, the souls of their children. And I say unto you, parents,
as well as My clergy: If you conform now to the world that has
been given to satan you will all die on the vine! And I am the
vinedresser. The tree is the tree of life, eternal life for all.
Conform to the world and you will die on the vine! (vol II page
176)
AUGUST 5, 1978 - This sin has now encroached upon the clergy
in My Son's House, His Church. A great measure of responsibility
has been given to them to save and guide the sheep. The pastures
are rich, but the sheep grow thin! They are not being fed spiritual
food. (vol II page 178)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1978 - You must keep in your hearts the knowledge
of the true priesthood of My Son. The steps for obtaining Holy
Orders must be followed. They have been developed through heavenly
guidance for reason. No women must enter onto the holy place of
the sacrifice. (vol II page 190)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1978 - My children, those who in vocation
have dedicated themselves to the priesthood, I ask you as your
God to cast away your pride. Admit there has been error. Listen
to your Vicar who stated that smoke of satan had entered My Church.
Did he have pride when he brought this knowledge to you? No! He
asked for help! And what did you do? You turned away and widened
the door for satan to enter! (vol II page 195)
OCTOBER 6, 1978 - There is much confusion and chaos set
upon the world by Lucifer, but if you understand; if you understand,
My clergy, that Lucifer is now upon earth with his agents, you
will understand why many have become blinded. The power of satan
is great. (vol II page 199)
MAY 23, 1979 - My clergy, you must take yourselves out
of the world; you are secularizing My Church, but you are also
demonizing the sheep, subjecting them to falling into the abyss;
because, though the mercy of the Eternal Father is all knowing,
and His Heart is merciful, many of Our sheep are falling into
the abyss because many of My priests are on the road to perdition
and taking others with them. O My children, , whatever shall become
of you?! It will take great strength of Faith to remain true.
(vol II page 215)
All will be tested like metals in the fire, and all that is rotten
shall fall. Return, My clergy, to a life of prayer, holiness,
and true purpose of your vocation............A priest, My children,
is a chosen man of God; a true legally ordained priest is
far superior than any man, as he represents Me in the Godhead.
(vol II page 216)
MAY 26, 1979 - I have warned you to protect your households
and your children from the evil forces that now have cast a dark
shadow upon mankind and the world. There are doctrines of demons
being expounded by human beings who knowingly or unknowingly have
become tools of satan. The saddest knowledge that I have received
is that My Son is being defamed even by His own, His own teachers,
those who have given themselves over to the world and have allowed
Our sheep to go straying. (vol II page 217)
JUNE 9, 1979 - I do not want you to leave your parish churches.
I want you and counsel you as your God to remain! If you have
any dispute, I ask you for the preservation of your salvation
upon earth, to not cast aside the role of the priesthood as given
through the Apostles, My followers. (vol II page 225)
JUNE 18, 1979 - Pray for your clergy. Obedience has been
distorted now to make them servants of those who are not true
rulers. (vol II page 227)
Many homes shall be torn asunder by the fall of the children.
Parents shall shed tears of anguish. Therefore, prevent this now
while your children are at a young age. Give them a firm foundation
of their faith. Be not afraid to speak out against heresy and
abominations, even if you have to do this against your clergy,
for many now have fallen in with the modernists, the socialists,
the communists, and some the satanists. Therefore, My children,
I make known to you the crisis that lies ahead. (vol II page 228)
JULY 14, 1979 - Clergy in My Son's House, His Church upon
earth, will you not return for the children, the statues, the
monuments of faith? The children must have a firm foundation.
Their minds are not matured enough to know, in feeling within
the heart, the existence of peoples in Heaven. These statues monuments,
must be returned to My Son's Churches. (vol II page 231)
AUGUST 4, 1979 - Because of pride, which is a worse barrier
to holiness, a more formidable barrier against holiness and piety,
O clergy, because of your pride, because you did not lock your
doors against the heretics as I have warned you; because you did
not prepare for satan whom I warned you years of earth's time
before would enter into My Son's Church to do battle with His
clergy, you did not prepare and guard yourselves for this onslaught.
And now, what are the real fruits of your labors; a loss of vocation,
My children losing the knowledge of their Faith, all manner of
sin, perversion and abominations being committed upon earth, until
all the saints in Heaven cry out to the merciful Father to put
an end to these abominations. Less and less honor is being given
to My Son.................Lucifer has converted many into his
army of ogres, satanists, and as such now they trample and recrucify
My Son. Do you think that the Eternal Father will allow you to
recrucify My Son? I say to you as your Mother to make amends,
do penance, return to your knees, remove yourselves from your
involvement in worldly pleasures and gain and power; political
aspirations for the enslavement of mankind. (vol II page 236)
Measure for measure, the Eternal Father shall meter to you a just
form of punishment. Many shall die in the great flame of the Ball
of Redemption............There is no excuse accepted now by the
Eternal Father among the clergy, who now offend the Eternal Father
by misleading the children of God upon earth. The experimentation
and changes must be stopped and reversed! There is no other course.
.............I ask all parents to retain the monuments, the statues
in their homes. A ask all parent and counsel you with knowledge
of what is to take place soon, that you retain upon your children
a sacramental of protection. Do not be swayed by those, even in
the clergy, who scoff at the knowledge or the existence of the
supernatural. Pray for them for they are truly a sad sight in
the eyes, before the Eternal Father. (vol II page 237)
I say unto the clergy, My Son's priests and the clergy of the
world! You have been deluded because of pride and arrogance. Your
minds are confused with worldliness, humanism and modernism. Pray
on your knees! Take your heads out of the fog now while there
is time, for your time is running out. Redeem yourselves in the
eyes of the Eternal Father now. .........Clergy! You must pray
now, and do penance. Gather your graces. And these graces shall
not be counted in the coffers of you collection plates. You will
not carry a mark of esteem with the heading of the dollar sign,
for you will sell your souls to get to the head. Do not spend
your time building an empire of wealth and fame, but the duty
and the honor that you have extended to Him in your vocation and
your life's work, and the manner in which you have brought His
sheep to Him, or the way that you have been instrumental in leading
them to their damnation and into the abode of the damned with
Lucifer..................And woe to the clergy who has given himself
over to worldliness and sin! Woe to the clergy who rejects his
vocation and chooses a life upon earth after he has taken his
vows! I say unto him: The judgment will fall great upon him. (vol
II page 238)
AUGUST 14, 1979 - O My children, it is of your free will
that you put yourselves onto the road to perdition. Many clergy
now are also on the road to perdition and taking many souls with
them. My Son will ask for full accounting, measure for measures
of His clergy. (vol II page 241)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1979 - My children, I do not want a schism
and division in My House upon earth, My Church. Convert the unbeliever.
Do not compromise your Faith. Heresy, O mournful heresy! Condoned
and promoted in My House! Do you seek, O clergy, to recrucify
Me?! (vol II page 245)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1979 - Because of pride and arrogance, even
the clergy in My Church upon earth refuse to listen to Me! Shall
you stand before Me, O clergy, and say that your teaching has
been pure in My sight!! Many of you shall be cast into eternal
damnation! You may fool the world in your human nature, but your
spirits and your human nature are known to the Eternal Father!
A full accounting for all mankind will soon be placed upon your
earth. (vol II page 248)
OCTOBER 2, 1979 - Even the clergy in My Son's House have
become addicted to sin. They have been allowed to become blind
and deluded, because they have become lovers of the flesh, seeking
pleasures and worldly power, and casting aside the knowledge of
the supernatural. They removed, with their power, all of the guardians
necessary for the protection of My Son's Church upon earth. (vol
II page 253)
OCTOBER 6, 1979 - My children, clergy in My Son's House,
His Church upon earth; I understand your bewilderment; I as your
Mother understand your concern. But many of you have your heads
and your hearts in the clouds, befogged by humanism, deluded by
modernism and your scientific manner of thinking with the reasoning
of man, not the knowledge of God............Many clergy have given
themselves over to pleasures of the flesh. Many have fallen into
sin and heresy, and have cast aside the truth of their vocations.
Many now rebel against their leader, their God-given leader, your
Vicar. In matters of Faith and Morals, man must not change the
God-given laws, coming from the Seat of Peter, and established
through Tradition upon earth through My Son's Church................Do
not abandon My Son's Church because of the antics, because of
the personality, of some or many of My Son's representatives in
the priesthood. Do not judge My Son's House, His Church, by man's
reasoning. But remember; you must remain in your parish churches,
partaking of the Bread of Life in the Eucharist. My Son is always
with you in the Eucharist. (vol II page 258)
NOVEMBER 20, 1979 - My child and My children, it is the
will of My Son that only man, not woman, shall give His Body to
the multitudes; only a man, a priest, legally ordained, a true
descendant of Peter, must bring My Son's Body to the multitudes.
(vol II page 263)
DECEMBER 24, 1979 - My Son, His Heart is torn by the manner
in which you have rejected His way; even reaching into the hearts
of the clergy. He has been turned away by many of them; for they
have given themselves over to pursuits and pleasures of the flesh,
succumbing to the errors of modernism so prevalent now in your
nation and throughout your world. The modernism has produced bad
fruits. (vol II page 268)
JUNE 13, 1981 - All clergy, cardinals, bishops, parish
priests and laymen, shall be accountable for the fall of all souls
within their self-imposed dedication of protection, which has
been cast aside; as many have been blinded by a life of too much
luxury and ease..........Your priests, priests in My House, My
Church upon earth, do not have a special passport to Heaven. In
their human nature they have the same struggle and must carry
the cross. However, many are casting aside the simple way for
a most complicated life, using man of science and intellectualism
to destroy his own soul. (vol II page 287)
JUNE 18, 1981 - We see all manner of confusion, experimentation.
There is no unity now in spirit. For man in the clergy has taken
upon himself to set up My Son's Church to his own pursuits, his
own man-given knowledge of intellect, without the spirit. For
much of the intellect is being directed by satan and not by God.
..........Awaken from your slumber, clergy in My Son's Church,
for you will also be counted among the least. In pride and arrogance
you have refused My counsel from Heaven. You have turned away
from Me. You have persecuted those I have sent to you. Your pride
and arrogance shall make you fall. Many mitres shall fall into
hell. Is this what you want? (vol II page 291)
I know, My child and My children, this discourse may be a mystery
to you, but much cannot be understood by mankind due to the darkness
and the clouding of the minds of many who have been entrusted
with the vocational guidance of children, and have misused their
positions to darken their souls and their intellect. However,
know that no evil is ever triumphant. All evil will be turned
to good. But what a great cost, My child and My children, for
many will die in the great flame of the Ball of Redemption. Only
a few will be saved. (vol II page 292)
AUGUST 14, 1981 - My child, you are draining your energies.
As I have warned you in the past, you must not be concerned with
the opinion of man. Understand, My child, were you speaking and
giving to them, Our sons the clergy, a message that would feed
their pride and build their arrogance, you would be accepted.
But I do not come to earth to go about in praise. I come to warn
of an urgency upon earth, and an action of the Eternal Father
to restore the earth to its former glory............Do not judge
My Son's House, His Church, by the man, though he is a representative,
legal, a legal representative of My Son, in His House, he is but
a human in his nature. But during the time that M Son comes to
you, this man will be used through the Holy Spirit, regardless
of the state of his human nature, be it sin or a saint; be it
a sinner or one who has led even those astray, at the time that
My Son comes in the Consecration, He shall not turn aside from
you, My Son. Therefore, you cannot say the Mass is invalid. This
has brought great sorrow to Our hearts, for many left the fold
on this matter. (vol II page 294)
JUNE 18, 1982 - All manner of abominations are being committed
in the world, and even has entered unto the clergy. Many clergy
shall stand before My Son and have to give account for what they
have done, and what measure they have taken to destroy souls upon
earth. Many are on the road to perdition and taking others with
them. (vol II page 303)
Mothers and fathers, where are you? You are running to and from
making money, seeking pleasures. But you are not the only ones.
You turn to your pastors, you turn to My Son's representative,
the priest, and other ministers in the congregations of the world,
and where are they? Their heads are in the sand. Their heads are
in the clouds, clouds of darkness. They, too, are turning to and
fro seeking riches and pleasures. How many are holy, and how many
are unholy? My children, they could be sorted very easily. There
are so few who are holy. We do not say this to judge My children,
but We say this to bring it out as a fact. How many are holy?
How many can stand before My Son and say that their teaching has
been pure in His sight? What will become of these poor priests
who have forgotten their mission, who have forgotten their vows?
What will become of them? Many mitres shall fall into hell.
And My good children, you do not pray for your priests. You do
not pay; I say the word "pay", for them; in other words,
ransom them from purgatory. Ransom them even from hell. We do
not wish to see Our priests be cast into purgatory or hell. But
there are many now in purgatory, and you must do penance for them,
and pray for them, for they are misled. They do not have courage,
the courage of their own convictions to stand up and fight. They
have lost the realization of the existence of the immortality
of the soul. And there are many now who are going about, be they
true, truly ordained priests, or are they infiltraters into My
Sons House? Only you, as a parent, can find out. Seek, and you
will find them out. By their fruits will they be known..........If
they tell you that the words of the Bible are only stories written
down by men, you will know they are false. If they tell you that
it is better to believe what the theologians are saying now in
1982, in fact, saying, in so little words, that all the other
theologians were stupid, know that they are not true. And that
is a fact. The priest is not true..............Now if he tells
you that you do not have to worry about committing a sin, because
God will not punish, He's an all-loving God, and, as an all-loving
God, He will not punish you for your sin. If that be true then,
why was Lucifer cast from Heaven? If We cannot sin, and God will
not punish us for our sins, why was Sodom and Gomorrah destroyed?
My children and My child, I hesitate to speak of such things as
immorality and the morals of mankind. However, it is something
that makes Me even blush, My child, that when priest tells you
that you do not have to speak up, out against homosexuality, because
you are judging another person, and you should love your neighbor,
and therefore never set him up to be judged, you are not judging.
If a person is doing wrong, and you tell him in a kind manner,
a charitable manner, that they are committing a sin, and that
they will lose their soul and go to purgatory, or even hell, that
is not judging. You are helping and loving your neighbor. What
is love?
And any priest that tells you, My child, or My children, as you
have experienced; We have allowed you to experience this for the
betterment of all mankind; any priest that tells you that you
must love your neighbor first and God second, he is not a true
man of God nor is he a true Roman Catholic priest, nor is he a
true minister of any denomination. Because the first Commandment
of God the Father is: I am the Lord Thy God, thou shall not have
strange gods before Me. Thou shall not take the name of the Lord
Thy God in vain...................And if a priest or a minister
even has the dare to blaspheme himself and tell you that don't
worry about sinning, because one day you will even be a god. And
you say, "a god?" If any of you have heard this, My
children, you know it is true, that many have become so arrogant
that they feel that they are minigods, little gods. In no
way will man be a little god. There is no justification to be
called a little god, no matter what place he has in this world..................There
is only one God, the Lord High God in Heaven. No man is God, even
though he places himself up as God now, even trying to create
life, and even trying to restore life to the dead. He shall never
restore life to the dead. He shall never create a life. What he
shall create is a monster, a soulless being. We will not go into
this, My child, as I see you are tiring. But We must warn the
parents against the immodesty of the world. My heart is torn as
I have told you, My child. (vol II page 304)
I will not stand for My priests who condone homosexuality and
allow it in My priesthood! I will not stand for My priests who
allow the murder of the unborn with their permissiveness! I will
not stand by and allow My priesthood to be destroyed! (vol II
page 305)
MARCH 18, 1983 - Yes, My child, I know of your despair
when meeting with clergy that have tried to teach you atheism.
O My child, pray for them. Pray and pray more, for all that remains
for your world is sacrifice and prayer and penance. (vol II page
379)
My child and My children, you must impress this upon the clergy
in a kind and charitable manner; you will tell them that they
must restore the good Book to its natural, to its natural being,
which has given way to modernism and humanism. By this I mean,
My child and My children, that this knowledge of hell and purgatory
has been removed from among you. The children are growing up in
a world that has been given to satan, and there is not much that
you can do at this time other that pray, do penance, and guard
your homes well. You will protect your children by indoctrinating
them into the legion of good, purified souls who follow Jesus,
My Jesus; with this prayer: My Jesus, my Confidence! (vol II page
380)
MAY 21, 1983 - We will go back, My child, in history, a
short history, and remember well what had happened in Rome to
John, Pope John whose reign lasted 33 days. O My child, it is
history now, but it is placed in the book that lists the disasters
to mankind. He received the horror and martyrdom by drinking from
a glass. It was a champagne glass given to him by a now deceased
member of the clergy and the secretariat of the state. (vol II
page 385)
Yes, My child, I know at one time that you did meet up with one
of Our priests who tried to disclaim the evidence about you of
sin, and mankind's sinning and abandoning himself to all the pleasures
of the world, leading to all measures of degraded life. (vol II
page 386)
MAY 28, 1983 - You will remember, My children and My child,
to guard the young. Your clergy have fallen into darkness. Abortions
will never be condoned. But We must have others who fervently
will go forward and bring out to the minds of those who have actually
seduced the country and the children bring them knowledge
of Heaven, hell and purgatory. Then they will not have free license
to sin. (vol II page 388)
APRIL 14, 1984 - O Our wandering sheep; are going without
true leaders. My priests of the world, I say to you now: You must
listen to My voice from Heaven. You must consecrate Russia to
My Immaculate Heart or you will die. (vol II page 401)
I must say to you now, from the Eternal Father and the Holy Ghost,
that We will not accept excuses coming from the human mentality
of Our priests, Our bishops, and Our cardinals. They look about
askance at the Message from Heaven. Would they have accepted it
better if We patted them on the backs and just went about lackadaisical,
figuring that perhaps they will figure out what this Message means
in time? But they do not have this time! That is why, My child,
We brought you tonight from your home and your bed, because the
time is growing very short. (vol II page 402)
You must all pray for your bishops, your cardinals and your pastors.
It is like an illness among them now going from one to the other.
They will have to accept their fate, not to take themselves away
from the Church, My Church, My children. We do not want satan
to close the doors. You must remain in your parish and stand there
as an example as you speak with the priests and the cardinals
and the bishops. You must keep your courage up and bring forth
as witnesses, disciples of the latter days, you must go forward
and try to save your brothers, those in the clergy. So few do
pray for the clergy. The general idea, My child, is that they
have a special passport to Heaven. But that is not true. Their
temptations are far greater than yours. Therefore, they are to
be pitied. For hell opened up would show unto you the numbers
of mitres that have fallen in the past earth-years. (vol II page
403)
M E S
S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - My child, I say this, for satan has
entered into the highest realms of the Hierarchy now. And this
I say unto you, stop them now while there is time. Approach your
priests, for they are planning the extermination of Pope John
Paul II before the Synod.............See that picture, My child.
There is silver, much silver being placed upon a table, and hungry
eyes look at it until like the magic of satanism their minds are
clouded. And I see among them many clerics; they are Roman Catholic
clerics. They among those who are plotting the assassination of
Pope John Paul. May God, My children, have mercy on their souls,
and stop them before it is too late. They cannot hide their guilt
from the Eternal Father. And as they mislead the flock, and even
stoop to murder to get their way, they are nothing but agents
of hell. ............Veronica: Jesus is not pleased with the manner
in which the clergy are carrying out their vocations, and, also,
the Mass. Jesus wishes that the Old Mass be returned to wipe out
many of the errors that have crept in since the New Mass has started.
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG) - Yes, My child, I must tell you, since
much of your penance for the priesthood has been accepted, My
child, I at first chose not to mention the sorrow We have because
of the manner in which My House upon earth is being continued,
a House, because of modernism, satanism, and seeking the profound,
not in the history of My House, but in the new modern way of doing
things. This new modern way has been promoted by satan............Yes,
My child, even with Vatican II, it started out with the best resolves,
but then satan took over the scene. And with his agents he reached
into the highest professions, the highest league of the Hierarchy,
until it saddens Me to say that many priests now are on the road
to perdition and taking many others with them.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, I
speak with you this evening to caution you, and not, to not fall
into despair because there is a conflict over My Brown Scapular...........You
will know, My children, that there are always rules and regulations
for everything that man holds sacred. Therefore, because so few
priests in My Son's Church are willing to intercede with the Scapular,
and enthrone those who wish it, it has become necessary to give
a Scapular to every child upon earth; and he or she of reasonable
age shall go forth and find a kind-hearted and true, holy priest
to enroll them. It will take, My children, much doing to find
these priests; there are not many left............O My children,
how difficult you are making it for Me, especially the priests
in My Son's House upon earth, His Church. I cry tears endlessly
when I know that every day My Son is confronted by numerous souls
who have lost their way, and refused the redemption that will
come to him through wearing the Brown Scapular...........I tell
you now that should you wish to be enrolled, I can only suggest,
though the outcome may not be as you wish, I could only suggest
that you approach a Franciscan priest, a Carmelite priest, or
a Dominican priest. The others have fallen away to a certainty,
and your chances of meeting up with success would be very little,
My child, among the others.
My child and My children, We cannot accept the political and the
rational views - I say 'rational,' because they do not use the
supernatural, but they curry - c-u-r-r-u, My children - they curry
on those who do not have the Faith to understand their so-called
'enlightened' messages to the world. This I speak of, My children,
for I know the influence of the clerics over the laity. .........My
child and My children, you may ask your priests for knowledge
of the stories coming from the old, elderly fathers of My Son's
Church, but can they tell you the truth now that their seminaries
have become polluted with errors? Mothers cry to Me; I hear all
of their prayers, prayers to Heaven to save their children. And
where can they find the knowledge of the truth to teach them?
That will depend now upon an earnest mother and father, and discipline.
Children are like soft flowers that must be nourished so that
their stalks will grow; and their faces, the purity of their faces,
shall rise toward Heaven and be nourished with the fruits of life.
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - My children, understand Us; We do not come with messages to upset you or to make you afeared of Us; that is not necessary. All you have to do is think, and use your hearts, not just your head; I say, not just your head, for the scientist and those who are in charge of the souls of your children are implanting in these souls dark seeds of hate, and envy, and the need for materialism. O My children, I could repeat over and over again the sins that make it a
world of destruction for those who are trying to stay on the narrow
road to Heaven, while all obstacles are placed in his way.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - And, also, remember, My children,
when you break one commandment, you break them all. So better
that you follow them through, and when you are ready to pass over
the veil you will not have to be gripped with fear if you cannot
have a priest on hand in your last moments upon earth. You see,
My child and My children, not everyone is taken from the earth
with the final blessing from the priesthood. That is a special
grace.................Pray for your clergy, for the bishops are
misguided. Pray for your cardinals, for some will fall into hell.
Pray for all mankind, for prayers are never wasted. If you have
any prayers left, My children, in your full day of praying, give
some to those in purgatory. There is such dire need for prayers
for those in purgatory who have no one on earth to pray for them.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG) - My child, I know you are in wonderment
of why Michael is holding the chalice with anxiety. I must tell
you within the chalice in Michael's hands are the Hosts collected
from throughout the world that had been discarded by the faithless.
I have asked that My Son's Body be protected upon earth. But many
clergy now have cast aside My warnings from Heaven, and His Body
has been placed and thrown on the floors, and into the water fonts
of many of My Son's Churches throughout the world. ..........
(Veronica receives Holy Communion invisibly from
St. Michael and recites the Act of Contrition and this prayer
for the priesthood) : I beg pardon for all those within Jesus'
Church who have cast aside their major roles as saver of souls.
I ask God to forgive them, and give them another chance through
the messages given by His Mother, Jesus' Mother, Mary, going throughout
the world at this time. I beg that Her pleadings with mankind
can actually, factually, turn them back to the Eternal Father,
and use His plan, His method of salvation. Amen.
My child, I want the world to know that Michael is the guardian
of the highest Heaven. You must also tell the priests within My
Son's Church that they must return Michael to his rightful place
as guardian of the Church, or they will be subjected to terrible
trials. What has happened to nations throughout the world, through
Russia, shall happen to the United States and Canada. Russia,
My children, is not entering where you can see them. They are
infiltrating now into every side of your nation; north, south,
east, and west; on the outer fringes and the inner fringes.
JUNE 18, 1986 (MSG) - My child and My children, this message
will not be greeted gleefully by your clergy. But since Lucy has
been silenced, it is necessary that the world knows the truth.
I will also send this message out through one more seer in the
world, and if it is not abided by, I have nothing to do but to
allow the Chastisement to fall upon mankind. ............My child
and My children, I come once more with an urgent and pleading
message to the hierarchy in the Church, My Church upon earth.
I want you to know now that We look upon you and find many that
do not fall into grace. They are falling out of grace and misleading
many of Our sheep. ...............Therefore, I warn you now as
your God: You will stop your intricacies within My Church. You
will stop experimenting. I gave you the rules to follow many years
ago, two thousand years approximately. And why now, two thousand
years later, do you deem it necessary to change My Church upon
earth? I, your God, say to you, you will be judged accordingly.
You will return My Church to its former glory, and in that manner
you will have more vocations and more entering the seminaries,
and not fleeing from them as they hear the heresies and all other
innovations that are going on within My Church. This is My last
and final word to My clergy. Change now or suffer a just punishment
and banishment. .............My child, that message must go out
strictly without change. You must not be worried nor affrighted
by any of the message because it is a dire necessity. I can no
longer stand by and watch, day by day without change, what is
happening in My Father's place upon earth. I say it in glory to
the Father and the Holy Spirit; it is His Church on earth.
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 - Yes, My child, there is much that
I have not told you or the world. But there are other seers throughout
the world at this time. And I promise you, My child, through all
the excessive suffering that you are doing, and as you offer it
up to the priesthood, you are gathering some souls for Heaven.
Remember, My child, and you will find your suffering much easier
to take if you will remember that each pain and each sorrow means
that you will offer it up for the priesthood. The prayers that
you have conducted for the priesthood on the Sundays of your years
upon earth shall be counted at the time when all of you shall
go over the veil. Then you will rejoice with all Heaven for the
number of priestly souls that you have brought back to the fold.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG) - Our Lady: My child, do you wish to
repeat what We had between Us of your mission? Veronica: Of
it will save souls, I will. Our Lady: Well then, My child,
repeat what I have asked you..................Veronica: I must
accept my sufferings and offer it for the priesthood. There are
not many prayers rising to Heaven for the priesthood, for many
believe that the priesthood has a special passport to Heaven.
............Our Lady: My child, I have to tell you in all truth,
that there are many priest who have gone to hell because too few
prayed for them, and they did not accept the road to penance,
dedication and truth. .................You must now, not later,
but now before it is too late, you must gather the armor about
you that Heaven has given you. Make it known to the world, that
they must all, every single individual on earth must at this time,
wear a sacramental; the St. Benedict medal, the brown Scapular;
a crucifix, blessed by a holy priest. And I say, holy, My children,
for I'm certain I do not have to go into further detail on the
other kind. By their fruits will you know them.
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG) - I say the true Church upon earth,
My Church, My children, which has been defamed, even by some of
My clergy. They have been taken away by crude, and Zealous, people
who go about posing as witnesses to God. You understand, My children;
I am talking to you now about the Jehovah Witnesses. They must
be cast aside, for they are false prophets in these end days.
But many, how many tears My Mother has shed upon the earth, as
She seen how many have been....capitulated to this evil sect.
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG) - Look up, My child, I want you to
look high into the sky and you will understand why you are being
persecuted. Veronica: I'm looking into what appears to be a
convent but, oh, my goodness!, this is a convent? There's a room
there now off the chapel, and I know, they're nuns, but what are
they doing! They're dancing. And they're dressed, not like nuns,
but in leotards! What are they doing?..................Now Jesus
is pointing over, and I see in the distance, looking far up into
the sky, I see in the distance a steeple. The steeple looks like
the type you would find on most churches in the United States,
with the crucifix, the cross, not a crucifix, but the cross on
the top. Now Jesus is pointing down, and I see coming out of the
door three or four men. Jesus: They, My child, are priests!
Veronica: Well...they are? Dear Jesus, I don't understand. What
are they doing? They don't look like priests.
That is what makes My heart ache, My child. That is one of the
reasons Theresa is crying constantly when she looks into the convents
and sees what is going on. Many now believe in abortion, the murders
of the children; and many have committed this act upon themselves.......You
ask, My child, how could this happen to those with a vocation?
How can they ever seek an abortion, no matter what the cause?
I will tell you, My child; it is because they have given themselves
over to immodesty. They have also given up their lives of prayer.
They seek the pleasures of the world. They cannot be condemned
at this time, My child, because there are too few that pray for
the clergy and the nuns. They need your prayers, all the Rosaries
that can be said for their repatriation. ................The
Eternal Father set up women not to be priests and not to be murderers,
but to be with the head of the household a guiding light for their
children. Each child to the Eternal Father is a pure blessing
upon mankind, but all this has been lost in the name of modernism.
Immodesty reigns in your country. There are many reasons why the
Eternal Father feels that it is now time to do something about
all of these abnormalities.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG) - And also, I say at this time, My
children, I will not tolerate much longer the infamous actions
of some of My representatives upon earth. Yes, My child and My
children, much has happened that has saddened the hearts of all
in Heaven. We watch, and we asked you to pray for your brethren,
to pray for your priests upon earth, for they, too, are human
and are susceptible to attacks from satan. .......I know this
frightens you, My child, but you, too, must make many acts of
reparation. You will suffer much in the days ahead. This We ask
of you because We cannot promise you everything upon earth, for
your reward will be great in the afterlife, My child. Accept your
suffering, and offer it always for the priesthood.
JUNE 17, 1989 (MSG) - There are so many errors now abounding
that it seems almost hopeless to recover those who have lost their
faith. Many have left My Church upon earth, and this disagrees
with the heavenly plan to save all mankind..................I
become agitated, My child, when speaking of this, because the
fault lies mainly with My clergy. The sheep are wandering now,
and so few have taken to prayer to save them. The prayer life
of the clergy has almost become nil. That means, My child, that
they must return to meditation and constant prayer, or much more
shall happen to the earth..................You will receive much
aggravation and also much discord from some clergy because of
the message I give to you this evening, My child, but I know that
you in your heart will do as We have directed you...................Remember,
My child and My children, no matter how rough the road gets, you
will stay within your parish church. And by good example and many
prayers you will bring the priesthood back into the light. Many
have lost their way because there are so few who pray for them.
Remember, My children, to pray for your clergy, for they are human
also and subject to error, mistakes, influence, and sometimes,
pure evil. Pray for your priest daily, My children.
OCTOBER 2, 1989 (MSG) - All those who think that life is
forever upon earth are making a serious error, and they are defeating
the reasons they were placed upon earth. There is no way other
than straight through to Heaven, hell, or purgatory. There isn't
a soul upon earth that can say, 'I will be here forever.' For
the only place that exists, My children, forever, is Heaven, hell,
or purgatory. *When My Son returns to earth, when the persecution
to the enlightened grows stronger, when all the world is fighting,
that My Son shall deem it necessary to return. ............*On
October 8, 1989, in a locution, Our Lady directed Veronica to
write in her own words a clarification, which follows: When Our
Lady spoke about Heaven, hell, and purgatory in the message, She
was especially addressing the clergy, as some have lost the reality
of the existence of hell. But they have especially lost the reality
of the existence of purgatory. Thus She chose to use the word
"forever," as this is earth's time, meaning till the
end of time, or till the day of the final judgment. The intention
being to impress upon the clergy the fact that purgatory does
exist, and there are souls who will be in purgatory till the end
of time. Naturally, at the end of the world there will no longer
be a need for purgatory, and it will cease to exist. "Heaven
and hell are forever" in the sense of the eternal, so naturally,
they shall exist without end. ...................Many prayers
are needed for the clergy. Won't you, My children, help them?
For many are lost; they are on the road to perdition. Please help
them. I ask you as your Mother, in your merciful hearts, for My
Son and the good of His Church, pray for your priests, your cardinals,
and bishops.
JUNE 18, 1990 (MSG) - I want to stress, My child, the existence
of hell and purgatory. It has been forgotten by many. Even the
priests in My Son's churches have overlooked this essential knowledge.
In fact, some now mock it as being untrue. My child and My children
of the world, please believe Me. I have been through purgatory.
I have been through hell. And I tell you all: Please, do penance
for your brothers and sisters who do not have the way. ...............The
way to Heaven is really led by a scene of love. The Eternal Father
is not One to punish you, for He wishes to save all mankind. He
has created you. Even that, My child, is being discarded. I hear
the voices that cry out that you were not created by the Holy
Spirit. But I say unto you, men of the cloth, too, that you do
not follow your religious beliefs. You've given them up, and your
work among precepts for man.............Also My Son wants it known
that He is fully aware of the prayer life, the lack of prayer
life, in His dedicated. They have become men of the world, and
no longer men of God. I know this shocks you, My child, but it
cannot be avoided. There has to be a change. ................Veronica,
My child, I repeat again, though My Mother had been throughout
your country for years now, with Her messages. We ask that the
priests take themselves out of this world. They are becoming men
of the state, not men of God. I accept the degradation and the
present confusion to My Church upon earth, but I want a change
back to normal. Man is building a church without the Eternal Father.
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - Listen, My child, and repeat after
Me: The Brown Bear of communism of red orientation, will seek
to devour the Holy Father, your Vicar the Pope, by assassination,
and place on the seat of Peter a communist puppet known by all
as the White Bear..............My child and My children of the
world, disaster lies ahead in Rome if this happens. Will you not,
in your goodness of heart, go forward and give this message to
the world. Approach your clergy. Write to Rome! Beg them to listen
before it is too late. Your Holy Father, the Pope, is in great
danger............They cannot outwit the Eternal Father in Heaven.
He knows their hearts, and they will not succeed if you will act
upon this and keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout
the world for your Pope, the Holy Vicar in Rome.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG) - So I ask you, My children, to keep
a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout your world and
through your churches, and even if you have to approach your pastors.
...............Many pastors have fallen away from the truth, and
they are like black sheep now among the white sheep. However,
I say to you, prayer can overrule all evil. Keep a constant vigilance
of prayer going throughout your country and the world. It is the
only resort now that you have against the evil.
OCTOBER 6, 1992 (MSG) - Your word of homosexuality can
be explained by the story of Sodom and Gomorrah. Read in your
Bibles or consult your clergy. Find yourselves, My children, a
humble, pious clergy. Many have fallen away from the Faith. Many
have sold their souls to get to the head. And this, My children,
I say of all denominations! ................You will continue
to pray a vigil of prayer for the clergy of the world. Darkness
has descended upon My Son's churches upon earth. Whatever shall
become of you all in the chaos that is fast coming to your country
and other nations of the world! There will soon enter upon your
world a despot. Number two, I call him. But many have named him,
and the Book of life refers to him as the Antichrist.
JUNE 18, 1993 (MSG) - The Eternal Father; I have had to
go before Him and plead your cause time and again, for He wishes
to bring the great Ball upon mankind. In His reasoning, His all-knowing
reasoning, He feels that too many souls are now falling into hell,
driven there even by some of the clergy.........Do not laugh,
O you who cannot understand the truth nor seek the truth. I say
now that if you will look, My child, for Me, look into what I
show you; the realm of the suffering........Veronica: Purgatory?........Our
Lady: Yes, purgatory...........Veronica: Oh, my goodness! I have
never heard such a din; the screaming and the wailing. And I see
people, they're clothed, but they're floating. I don't know, it
seems to be endless. They're being tossed back and forth, and
all I can hear is screams and moans. Oh, my goodness.........Our
Lady: My child, come closer to Me. You understand there are three
realms: Heaven, purgatory, and hell. I allowed you to look upon
purgatory, and I understand your shock. Because; tell, My child,
fully what you have seen........Veronica: I have seen mitres,
bishops, and even several cardinals. And then I see a whole score
of priests with their cassocks; they're still dressed in their
garments; that they are moaning and pleading. Now Our Lady is
placing Her hand before my eyes. It is frightening. It's one of
the most frightening things I have ever witnessed.
Our Lady: My child, I want you to understand and bring to the
world the absolute truth and reality of this realm. There are
mitres and there are cassocks there. I want you to tell the world
that there are clergy who are now falling into purgatory, if not
some in hell, because they are misguiding the sheep..........My
child and My children, We have asked you on numerous occasions
to pray for the clergy. They do not have a special passport from
Heaven. They fight the influence of satan and his agents upon
earth, but they need your prayers.........I ask of you all to
pray for your parish priests. Temptation is great upon them; however,
they are being put to the test by the Eternal Father, ad all who
are rotten will fall..........Veronica is shown a scene: I see
the inside of a church. There is service going on. But, however,
what are they doing? They are skipping, like frolicking down the
aisle. As I watch I see; it is the priest, I believe, behind the
altar........He is motioning to two children to come out of the
pews and go to the rear of the church. The children are hastily;
almost running to the back of the church, and I see they are picking
up something. Oh, it is the ciborium and the plate. Oh!.........Our
Lady: Now what are they doing, My child? Veronica: They are taking
it up to the altar. Now the priest and the other man........Our
Lady: The deacon, he is called, My child, the deacon.
Veronica: They are giving them over to them, and the priest is now going back to his station behind the altar. Now all of a sudden he takes his hand, and a young; oh, a young woman is coming out of the pew, but oh, my goodness me! She has on a pair of shorts and she's heading for the altar. .......Now the woman starts to sing. Her music is not one of the Church, or those accepted by God. And as she sings, the priest stands behind the altar. And in his eyes; is he admiring her or admonishing her?......Or Lady: It looks, My child, like he is admiring her. .............
Veronica: The shorts she is wearing is most revealing and immodest,
Our Lady said: Now that woman is now going to sit at the site
of the altar, and as she crosses her legs it is a most horrible
infringement on the sacred rites, for it is almost embarrassing
indeed Mother, for me, to look. Must I see it? ........Our Lady:
Yes.........Veronica: The shorts are no longer shorts. They're
almost gone! And, and I can see the expression on the priest's
face as he's observing this. Now also, there are two young girls
about fourteen years of age sitting at the side of the altar as
the priest goes forward to consecrate the host..........Our Lady:
My Son's Body.......Veronica: Now as I watch I notice now after
the consecration that the priest is now taking his place on the
right side of the altar at the last pew over to the right, and
the deacon is going over to the left. And now; I don't believe
it!........Oh, I see it, Blessed Mother! There are two young girls.
Or Lady, How old are they?.........Our Lady: Fourteen years old.........Our
Lady is saying: Veronica, don't close your eyes. Open them and
tell Me what you see.
Veronica: I see people streaming forward from the pews, and they're now being given the Host by the two young girls. Now the woman who's standing off to the side, very friendly but immodest. Our Lady said; immodest you must say, is deserving all this with a smile on her face. .........Now I see a man sitting in the aisle. He's crying. He has his Rosary beads in his right hand, and he's crying.........I know, Blessed Mother, how he feels. He's not of this generation which has fallen to satan. I know just how he feels. The only thing that he has to hold onto is the Rosary. .....
Our Lady: My child, you see what is going on. Less and less honor
is given to My Son. Whatever shall become of My children upon
earth? I have wandered through earth; through timeless earth-years
trying to warn My children of the coming punishment to mankind.
.......Now also, We give fair warning to all clergy. Should you
not turn from your path of self-seeking riches and think of the
souls that you have in your care to bring to Heaven, you, too,
shall vanish with the fires of the Ball of Redemption.........Cardinals,
bishops, priests of the order of God; if you are guilty, turn
from your ways. I make no accusations by name, though the list
is growing long, to the Eternal Father. You who were given the
God-given grace to be leaders of the flock have now scattered
Our sheep! Bishops, what has become of your vocation? You are
becoming despoilers of the human race. You cannot hide your sin
from the Eternal Father. Turn back while there is time!
The prayer life of the clergy has fallen. Unless they return to
prayer and sacrifice, give up the worldly cravings of mankind,
and agree to a life of piety and dedication and fortitude, even
while under attack; you will get nowhere, My clergy, by following
the modes of the world. You must lead a disciplined life and give
to Our children of the earth the knowledge of Heaven, hell, and
purgatory........How can you, My clergy, lead others when you
have adopted a mode of humanism catering to mankind? You do not
heed the spirits of My children upon earth. As such you cannot
enter the Kingdom! .......My child and My children, I ask you
all from the mercy of your hearts to pray for your clergy. They
are human and as such, they can fall into error and sin. Unless
you pray for them many more shall be in the hell you have seen,
My child.
PRIESTHOOD: DRINAN, FATHER
SEPTEMBER 6, 1975 - You will contact your representative
who has given himself to the world and tell him that he also is
facing damnation. This, I say unto you for you are being warned!
Remove yourself from that profession, Father. Father Drinan, come
out of the darkness. (vol I page 408)
AUGUST 14, 1972 - I bless the Pastor of My Son's House,
Father M, for he has now received a grace far more than he had
anticipated. One day, you, My child, will understand this. (vol
I page 60)
PRIESTHOOD: PADRE PIO
JUNE 18, 1974 - Veronica: Now behind Our Lady there's
a man. Oh! He's wearing a brown monk's habit. It's Padre Pio.
Now his hands are raised in front of him. He's smiling. I'm looking
now at his beard. His beard is very white, but he has a very young
face. He's smiling; oh, he's so happy! And he's placing his hands
in front of him, like this. Oh! And now he's taking now cloth;
it looks like, it looks like he has on a pair of mittens, gloves
with the fingers cut out. Now he's removing them from his right
hand, and he's holding his hands forward. Oh, and I can see his
hands. They're very badly bruised. Oh, my. Oh, it's very sore-looking.
He has holes right through his, the center of his palms. (vol
I page 219)
PRIESTHOOD: FATHER S.
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - And also at this time, I wish to extend
My Mother's heart of comfort to Father S. It was the Eternal Father's
will that he come unto you. But, naturally, as he joined the flock
from Heaven, the wolves were after him and dispersed him from
among the flock. His heart is known to Me, My children, so do
not seek to find reasons for his present conduct. He will come
back, but he will have a heavy cross to carry when he returns.
We are proud of Our son that he did much to spread the Message
from Heaven.
D. S.
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - Veronica: D.S. has been given fair warning
by Our Lady to cease and desist, or he will be exposed. It is
in the merciful Heart of Jesus and the Eternal Father that a warning
is given when an action will be taken by Heaven. ................Our
Lady: Pray a constant vigilance of prayer, for satan shall attack
all who seek to remain on the road to Heaven. The greatest attacks
will be upon those who become and fall in the name of pride and
arrogance. Yes, My child, you must pray for him, for his soul
is in great danger. .................It is a merciful act from
Heaven that you give this message to him, My child. Do not be
afeared; he will go no farther that the Eternal Father permits.
Now, My child, you will understand My messages of a short time
ago, and you have learned with difficulty. I should say, My child,
the hard way, that there can truly be no instant priest. The merger
that he made was not of God. It has been allowed by the Eternal
Father in order to set some people straight, My child. There are
others who will follow in his path, and they will bring much sorrow
to Heaven..................It is a lesson that he has learned;
but now he must act upon it and go to a confessor, a good, a true
Roman Catholic priest. He must go to a confessor, a Roman Catholic
priest, My child. In the mercy extended by the Eternal Father,
you will tell him again: He must go to a Roman Catholic priest
and make a full confession. Amen, My child, and I bless you for
your courage to speak out in the time such as this, My child.
It is only when you can lose all self-interest and think not of
yourself, but to reach out with your heart and your faith to save
a soul, My child, that you are fully graced by Heaven...............You
will write him, My child, once more, and give him this message:
He must confess to a Roman Catholic priest. He has been deceived
by satan. (vol I page 549)
PRIESTHOOD: HIERARCHY/RED HATS/PURPLE HATS/PASTORS/SHEPHERDS
V O L U
M E I
FEBRUARY 11, 1971 - This man of perdition, this man out
of hell, will spread his darkness through Holy Church! Hold the
Truth always in your heart! Pray for your priests, your hierarchy,
for the Faith has grown weak! They will be victimized by the evil
one who is now loose in your Land. He will only possess a soul
that has grown weak! Strengthen your souls by staying with My
Son, near the Tabernacles of the world. Accept the gift of My
Son often, His Physical Body, present in your Eucharist, given
to you only by consecrated hands blessed by My Son and Ordained
to do His Work and represent Him! Turn you face from those who
wish to profane the Body of My Son. The Light of the Holy Spirit
will guide you in this respect! The indignities to My Son, the
Eternal Father and all Heaven are increasing with the increased
destruction of the man of sin! His goal is the possession of all
spirits destined for My Son's Kingdom. (vol I page 23)
JUNE 17, 1971 - Your prayers are sorely needed for your
priests, your cardinals, your bishops. The heaviest attacks are
upon those with the most influence in My Son's House. Yes, there
are those who have fallen to satan. They will drag many other
souls to hell with them. We do not want. (vol I page 29)
JULY 25, 1971 - You will continue to disperse the message
that We have given you in the past times. We are approaching the
final gathering of the souls. You will send out the messages of
the last days to all cardinals and bishops as directed, for when
My Hand comes upon you, My Warning will have been sent throughout
the world. When this Chastisement comes upon you there will be
no excuse for ignorance for in the truth it will be that you have
remained in the darkness and rejected the Light. (vol I page
31)
AUGUST 15, 1971 - Your workers will be limited, My child.
It is necessary for your safety and the well being of your mission
with Us. Your greatest adversaries will be those who should know
better, Our Cardinals who lead Our bishops into error. You have
been allowed to proceed in error because of your vain satisfaction
seeking of bodily pleasures and because you have replaced your
God with idols, humanism, idolism, destruction. (vol I page 33)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1971 - The children must be saved for they
are the innocent victims of their elders! Parents who have grown
lax as they seek the pleasures of the world before, the spiritual
welfare of their children, their children's souls! (You will flee
from all false pastors! You will not be led into false obedience,
for in this way you will be led as sheep to the slaughter). (vol
I page 34)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1971 - Beware, My children, of those about
you who are enemies of light and life. You must flee from them.
I repeat: You must flee from false pastors, not to give disrespect
to My Son's House (Church) but to prevent the souls of your children
being contaminated by the evil. He (anti-Christ) is working hard
in My Son's House (Church). But this you will remember in the
days ahead, they will not be triumphant. All evil is never triumphant.
We will bring the sword and destroy these evil one's in My Son's
House! They have darkened the souls of My children and I seek
to bring them back to Me. They who once were the light and now
have walked into the darkness. I give you the knowledge, My children.
(vol I page 35)
OCTOBER 7, 1971 - My child, My children, the trial approaches,
your prayers are sorely needed now, for already the plan is in
motion to remove your Vicar from among you. Pray! Pray as you
have never prayed before! ..........I warn you now, red hat of
evil intent, you will not expel My Vicar from Rome! You who have
sold your soul to Lucifer, do not think that We do not watch?
Your sins are not committed in darkness that We cannot penetrate!
You will bring the sword upon you! (vol I page 37)
NOVEMBER 20, 1971 - Prayer, sacrifice daily, an act of
love, the reward far surpasses the temporary pleasures in this
earth world of satan. You will send all the messages to the bishops,
they have been misled and they now hold the balance. The red hat
has fallen! The purple hat is being misled! Pray that they may
receive the light before too many souls are led down the road
to damnation; even those you can rescue by your prayers. (vol
I page 39)
DECEMBER 24, 1971 - The Message must go to all bishops
and cardinals. They will be given the time to render a good account
to their God before the Chastisement. (vol I page 40)
MARCH 24, 1972 - All cardinals and bishops are being held
accountable for defilement of My Son. Those who have led many
astray will now turn back and return to the Light of Truth. You
have traded within My Son's House, man has traded within My Son's
House; bargained His Body for gain and power, while souls are
numberless that are being starved, and thirst for the pure Waters
(people are like flowers; souls are flowers in God's Garden on
earth, who are now in black soil; nourishing waters poisoned,
so the fair lilies have wilted and many die) (St. Theresa, 1969,
to Veronica: "Their flowers faces can no longer face up to
the light.) (vol I page 45)
APRIL 10, 1972 - My child, you will make it known to Our
high priests that they are not to become involved in politics
of the world. They are being led into the web that will take them
into deep darkness. Hearken now, and heed My words you are being
blindly led into darkness.......Rank in My Son's Church will not
guarantee you entrance into the Kingdom. All who trade in My Son's
house will be judged among the least! You will not bargain My
Son for the things of your earth! (vol I page 50)
MAY 10, 1972 - I repeat again, that Our high priests (cardinals
and bishops) must not enter into politics, for they will find
themselves bargaining away My Son's Body! (vol I page 51)
JUNE 8, 1972 - You are gnawing at the structure of My House
(Church); Judas's within My House! There are many Judas's within
My House! Turn back Romans! The sword is poised!..........The
facts and truth must be told. Those who are holy will be given
the light to recognize the Truth. Evil has fallen upon the holy
men of the Church. Pray for the cardinals and bishops; pray for
all priests! Many have gone into darkness. Pray for them. ............The
red hat has fallen; the purple hat is being misled. Pray for all
men of sin, as the angels are crying. ..........This, My child,
is what will be, in darkness will they seek the way. The Rabat
(collar, Roman) is the teacher of Life, be not fooled by those
who foul them. ............Forged documents are coming out of
Rome. The enemies within Holy Church seek to place the papacy
and Pope Paul in a bad light; to place the blame on him, in an
attempt to tear down the papacy and set up an international religion
and not of Jesus Christ. Many are accepting as sheep going to
the slaughter. They neither pray nor try to patch the cracks.
Many are in need of awakening to the truth. Rank in the Church
is no guarantee of salvation. The Light is dim now; Jesus will
be recrucified by members of His own House (Church). For what?
Hell is their destination! Those in the Light cannot deny these
facts. Shall We say We have a pope in chains? Yes! He cries, 'help,
help!' He is being placed upon the cross now. Stand behind Holy
Father, Pope Paul! Jesus commands this, now! (vol I page 53)
JUNE 18, 1972 - All high priests of My Son's House will
live in the spirit and not be concerned with the politics and
worldly living. You will make your choice you will stand with
My Son, or you will be of the world, and you who have been given
the graces to represent My Son in this world will be cast aside
and condemned with the least for the offenses you are committing
against your God! (vol I page 55)
JULY 15, 1972 - You shall inform Our bishops that intellectual
pride has been their downfall. You will inform the red hats that
they have overstepped the boundaries you are like rodents burrowing
into the structure of My Son's House! Many mites shall fall into
hell! Hell, the abyss, is open wide. Number three (demon) enters
among you. (Three demons of special mission are loosed, three
more to go for 666.) (vol I page 56)
JULY 25, 1972 - There will be many mitres in hell! Many
priests are on the road to damnation; with them they take others!
For them, the lowest pit of the abyss will be eternity! Those
entrusted with My Son's House will be held accountable for the
fall of young souls! Your rank will be no guarantee of an entrance
into the Kingdom! You have betrayed My Son! How dare you sell
His House! You have sold My Son's House for the profits of your
temporary lifetime! Woe to evil man who has cast aside his God!
You will receive the sword! (vol I page 57)
AUGUST 5, 1972 - Satan seeks to capture the souls of all
the dedicated. It will be those of true faith and compassion who
will offer their sacrifices for the recover of the souls being
captured in My Son's House (Church). Our Lady extended Her Rosary
and scapular and said, "The sacramentals must be worn! .......St.
Peter (to all cardinals and bishops) I am Saint Peter! You will
not cast aside My words and teachings!! You will go down on your
knees and beg forgiveness for the offenses to the Sacred Heart
of your God! You agents of darkness who have taken the Book of
Light and try to destroy what has been written by the holy men
of the House of God! Your actions have set the standards for a
fallen world! Turn back Romans! Turn back. You ask for the hand
of a punishing God upon you! Turn back while you still have time!
(vol I page 58)
St. Peter: Hear me well! Those in the House of God, you will stop
your conversing, your leanings toward modernism, your venturing
with rationalization! Turn back and get on your knees! You have
been deceived by satan. He has been present at your meetings.
Many receive the fate of hell! Your rank in the House of God
gives you no precedence over another soul!, for you, too, will
be cast aside and judged with the least for your part in the final
damnation of those souls entrusted in your care by the Father!...........The
agents of hell are multiplying in the House of God. All cardinals
and bishops will ask themselves this question: Can I stand before
the Eternal Father and say, 'my teaching has been pure in Your
sight? If you can say this with truth of heart, then you have
been misled. Misled! If, in your truth, you have accepted the
riches of the world, and sold souls for the acceptance of these
riches, then you will be spit out like venom to enter the flames!
You shall join Luciel (satan) in his kingdom! All cardinals and
bishops will now take themselves off the road to hell! They will
take their spirit where it belongs, wherein the realm of good,
casting aside their lusts, their desire for riches, their pampering
of the body, while the souls are starving! No longer will your
offenses be tolerated! (vol I page 59)
AUGUST 14, 1972 - To the High Priests: You will spend more
time in prayer, and less idle talk on the winds!..........I have
given you the plan for the days ahead; as such, you have been
prepared (about the anti-Christ coming to the seat of Peter if
Pope Paul is removed), and now you must act upon it. (Do not let
it happen). (vol I page 60)
AUGUST 21, 1972 - The judgment of your God is not akin
to the judgment of man. The Eternal Father will only judge by
the heart. Your rank, your accumulation of worldly goods will
not set you up before another. Many have sold their souls within
the Holy House of God. Better that you strip yourself and remove
all worldly interest now while you have the time. Make amends
to your God! For many mitres will fall into hell! (vol I page
62)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1972 - Those in My Son's House now receive
final warning that they will not remove Our Vicar from the holy
House of God, for to do so will set in motion the advent of the
anti-pope into your house! You will not defile My Son in this
manner!..........All Cardinals, all Bishops will stop wasting
their words and get down on their knees now! Satan is among you,
and his agents are multiplying in the holy House of God! Many
are selling their souls for the temporary pleasures and riches
of the world! Pray, My children, pray much for those who have
fallen! (vol I page 63)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1972 - The message from Heaven has reached
those who have been operating in darkness. Many now have chosen,
on free will, to cast aside Our admonitions! They are now planning
for the entrance of the evil one, the man of dark secrets onto
the seat of Peter! The harbinger of evil burrows into the structure
of the Holy House of God get down on their knees now, and beg
pardon and do penance for the offenses they have committed against
their God they will not be spared the abyss!...........We see
the greatest of evils being perpetrated in the holy House of God.
The example being shown by the high men of the holy House of God
is abominable! The harvest of Lucifer will be great. My heart
has now uncountable thrusts from the hands of My children on earth.
.............Cardinals, bishops, you must all go down, now, on
your knees, and pray! Do penance for your offenses now while you
have the time!.........The aberrations and abominations being
committed in the holy House of God have had no precedence from
the time of Noah, and before the time of Noah! The offenses to
your God call down justification for the end of your civilization.
(vol I page 64)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1972 - In the ranks of My Son's House are many who have chosen to sell their souls. Their fall will have repercussions, My child, for they will take many others with them. ........
You will continue to send My message to the cardinals and bishops
of your country and the world. They are now going down the same
road that they chose many years ago when they chose to cast aside
My warnings. Intellectual pride has hardened their hearts and
closed their ears to the truth. Man is setting up his own kingdom.
Many are those in the House of God who have chosen to help them
undermine the foundation! Let it be known that their endeavors
will come to nil. The foundation is My Son! It will never fall
unless the Father permits, as Chastisement, to rise later, gloriously
renewed. (vol I page 65)
OCTOBER 2, 1972 - All cardinals and bishops will go down
on their knees and pray for the recovery of the fallen souls in
their care. Many red hats have succumbed to the temptations of
the flesh! Many purple hats are following suit! All travel the
wide road into darkness for the eventual damnation. You will turn
now and make restitution now, now while there is time. (vol I
page 67)
OCTOBER 6, 1972 - A wise soul knows the true meaning of
saving. Prayer, sacrifice, atonement, are your measure for recovery.
There is much talk going upon the winds. Talk which is destructive
and not constructive. This We find in the Holy House of God. Better
they turn now, go down on their knees, and beg forgiveness for
their offenses against their God! Rank shall not spare the wicked.
Remember Luciel (satan). He was cast from the Eternal Kingdom!
All who turn their backs on the command of the Eternal Father
will join Luciel in his dark world! (vol I page 68)
DECEMBER 30, 1972 - To priests in the House of God, this
direction I give to the High Priests of My Son's House. You have
abandoned prayer, for the love of the world. You have accepted
false teaching of humanism, and have developed a destroying love
for the material. Now you will make an about face, and return
to the proper teachings. Prayer will recover you from the darkness
into which you have led yourselves and others. A great responsibility
for the many punishments that will come upon your country and
the world will be set before the High Priests in the House of
God. .................I feel at this time there is no further
need for direction, but that you open your hears to the Holy Spirit
and allow the light to enter your souls. Get down on your knees
and pray. And direct your sheep to keep a constant vigilance of
prayer. For you have reached the crisis and the direction now
lies with man. Your world has given itself to satan. (vol I page
74)
FEBRUARY 10, 1973 - Blindness of heart and intellectual
pride have set many of Our high priests onto the road to damnation.
Their example will take many with them, but they, too, can be
returned if they will turn from their worldly ways, and return
to prayer and starve their bodies of the demons that have entered
upon them. (vol I page 82)
MARCH 18, 1973 - You will all continues your acts of sacrifice
and penance for the clergy because they will be sorted as sheep
and goats. The hierarchy will also be given the same test. All
that is rotten will fall, until the Church and House of God will
be restored to the original plan of the Father. (vol I page 87)
OCTOBER 6, 1973 - High priests of God and foolish virgins
who have given themselves to the world, why have you chosen to
go down the path to ruination? Your example have set many on the
road to hell! Are you ashamed to stand forth and wear the habit
of your order? No, you will not enter the Kingdom of Heaven by
entering the world! When the world and the House of God become
one, it is the end! (vol I page 140)
NOVEMBER 24, 1973 - You will not continue on your path
of destruction, each man succumbing to his own worldly pleasures
and desires, leading to worldly gain and the loss of his soul
and those souls best influenced by their rank..........You must
all now starve your bodies and rid yourselves of the demons which
you have allowed to enter upon you. A House in darkness wears
a band of death about it. All that is rotten will fall. The light
grows dim. (vol I page 146)
APRIL 13, 1974 - .....Pray for those in the House of God
who have lost their way. Many Mitres are now on the road to perdition.
Pray for them for it is of great sorrow to Our Hearts to see a
man of God fall from his mission. Satan has entered into the highest
places of the Church. Pray much, I have asked you in the past
to help patch the cracks. The Bark of Peter flounders. You will
stand fast with Our Vicar. .................Yes, My child, the
words were not misquoted. My Son did use the words 'the sons of
satan'. The sons of satan do the work of satan, for their father
is the father of all liars. These sons of satan have worked many
years to tear down the House of God but they shall not succeed.
It is sad, My child, to know that those whom We have chosen have
set themselves in conspiracy against the House of My Son. For
the love of money, many will sell their souls. They care more
for the pleasures of earth than for the eternal glories of the
Kingdom of the Father. How sad it will be, the weeping, the gnashing
of teeth, when they come over the veil and know that they will
long for what may have been. (vol I page 193)
MAY 30, 1974 - My child, you will make it known to the
Bishops of My Son's House, those in authority, that they must
not compromise. They do not gather souls by compromising their
Faith. They must stand forth as symbols of chastity, piety and
humbleness. What has become of these virtues in mankind? (vol
I page 205)
JUNE 15, 1974 - Pray much, My children, for your pastors,
that they be given the strength from the Father to go forward
in truth and in the light. It is sad to say, My child, that many
have lost their way, preferring to receive the rewards of mankind.
Their knowledge of the supernatural has been cast aside and replaced
by humanism and the modernism of your times, rationalizing even
sin, My child! .............There is developing, My child, in
your country and the world, a most dangerous trend: It is one
of separation from the Peter, the head of your Church. You will
not bring about this separation from the Seat of Rome! You have
nothing to gain but everything to lose, for should you go ahead
with this plan of separation, you will lead unto the road of the
abyss, leading to the abyss, many souls. Woe unto those pastors!
Woe unto, the clergy who now set themselves up as leaders to confuse,
confound and mislead! (vol I page 213)
Pastors, shepherds of the flock, why do you scatter Our sheep?
Do you not know that your responsibility lies with the Father,
your Creator, who has chosen you to direct His sheep? Why have
you chosen to scatter them? Gather these sheep; or forever you
too shall enter into the abyss. There is no place in Heaven for
one who has cast aside the role so important, of such greatness,
one who is a representative of My Son in His House, chosen from
among thousands, millions upon earth. How sad that so few recognize
any longer their true calling! (vol I page 215)
JULY 1, 1974 - Veronica: Now it's growing much brighter
over by the left side of the flagpole. And I see, I see a man
on a cross. The cross is lying almost horizontal, but, no, both
sides of the cross have long cords. And I see there's a man on
the cross, and the cross is being pulled across by, I can see
the clergy, Cardinals and Bishops. Now the man on the cross, oh,
the man on the cross is the Holy Father, Pope Paul...........Our
Lady: My child, the scene that you have just witnessed is in the
present. Our Vicar and your Father on earth is being crucified
by those who have pledged themselves to follow him in obedience.
It saddens the heart of all in Heaven to observe the disobedience
of the children of earth to Our Vicar. These seeds of disobedience
have been sown by satan. (vol I page 225)
AUGUST 5, 1974 - There is great disobedience in the Houses
of My Son throughout the world and a great predominance of such
in your country. Pastors have chosen their own way. Many are in
great disobedience to Our Vicar. Man has been set up as an idol
of worship. No man shall be above the Creator for all men will
eventually return to the dust. The soul is eternal, life continues;
the word 'death' should be removed as such, from your books. There
is no death. Your body is but a casing, a temple for you holy
spirit. When you desecrate this temple, you desecrate your spirit.
You blacken this holy edifice of the Father and as such without
redemption, you must be given to satan. (vol I page 238)
AUGUST 14, 1974 - Those who have the highest rank in My
Son's House, in the Houses throughout your world, are using their
rank to destroy many souls. Pray, pray much for them, for they
too shall burn in the fires of hell. (vol I page 242)
Do not be misled by false pastors; those who care more for their
worldly living and their easy living, and those who will not stand
forward because the faith has become weak and defend My Son before
the enemies of God! No!!! They, too, will be cast aside with the
goats! Fair warning I give! I cannot say that the Father is satisfied
with the teaching of those He has chosen to guide the children
and the sheep of the world! No!!! I must say, there is great sorrow
in Heaven. (vol I page 243)
AUGUST 21, 1974 - It is through My voice-boxes throughout
the world that We must send this warning of caution to all of
Our cardinals and bishops. The Father will not tolerate their
entering into secret societies!............... The discipline
and rules as set down by My Son and those He chose to write the
Book of Life and Love, must be adhered to! We direct, in the name
of the Trinity, that you bishops and cardinals of the world must
use your full powers as hierarchy to Excommunicate and defrock
all who seek to dethrone My Son and destroy the Faith...............Many
of you are in disobedience to Our Vicar! Many of you set yourselves
up as gods in your own parish! Where is your charity? Where is
the piety? Love, love, the word "love" We see everywhere
but so few know the true meaning. (vol I page 246)
It will be a command of the Father from Heaven, that all in authority
defrock and excommunicate those under their rule who seek to destroy
the Faith as given by the Father from Heaven........... Those
in rule will excommunicate and defrock all who enter and make
pact with the separated brethren and all who will compromise the
Faith with the separated brethren. (vol I page 248)
It must be known that My Mother's Message, they will seek to stifle,
for they are not of the light. These misguided Bishops and Red
Hats, be they misguided or fallen, will allow the world to accept
My Mother's mission. It is sad that Her Message from the Eternal
Father was not permitted in the medias of your country. You can
fully understand, My child, how controlled now your medias are.
(vol I page 249)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1974 - I have asked many times that the leaders
in My Son's Houses watch carefully those in their charge. There
has entered upon them a delusion. You must not be sucked into
the octopus hands of those who seek to destroy My Son's House,
His Church. They come to you as angels of light, with honeyed
words and their acts of piety that are surfaced. However, within
you find the blackened hearts and the evil intent. (vol I page
253)
Pastors, shepherds of the flock! Cleanse your House now while
you have the time, for a House in darkness, a Church in darkness,
wears a band of death about it! All that is rotten will fall!
Wake up from your sleep! Take the blindness from your eyes and
follow the truth given to you in your vocation. You have only
one answer! Reverse yourself from your present course of destruction!
Recognize the faces of evil about you! Satan has many faces and
agents. They will come in human form to destroy. The cunning
and the dexterity of satan, there are no bounds that he will not
use to claim a soul. (vol I page 254)
You will make it known to the world that those whom I have chosen
to be shepherds of My flock will suffer greatly in the days ahead.
However, they must guide by the light those who have not in earthly
training, for My priesthood have been given the knowledge of truth.
They must live this life. They must not give themselves to the
world, for at the present time, My children, My Houses upon earth
are being opened to all the agents of hell. You must cleanse My
House now, or you will have to close your doors! (vol I page 258,259)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1974 - The leaders in My Son's Houses upon
earth, those who represent Him, must set a better example as shepherds!
Shall you stand before My Son, shall you as shepherds, stand before
Him and say that your teaching has been clean in His sight? Nooo!
He will see through you and cast you into the fires of hell! (vol
I page 261)
He shall not unite as one, the ways of the world and My Son's
House, Church! Man shall not be set up as an idol to worship!
The following of the this course has condemned many to hell! Be
they laymen or wearing mitres upon their head. They, too, have
fallen into the abyss! They have free will, they have chosen to
offend the Father and discard the trust given to them in their
vocation. (vol I page 264)
OCTOBER 2, 1974 - Pray, pray for those who wear the highest
mitres, for they, too, have set themselves onto the road to hell.
Your prayers and your acts of sacrifice and those who hear My
voice! Act upon it now, for the time grows short. (vol I page
277)
OCTOBER 6, 1974 - When you speak of Faith, My child, make
it known to the world that Faith is also Tradition. The deposit
of Faith lies with Holy Church. We see many who are using their
rank to destroy the Faith. Know that the Father is watching them,
permitting them to go their way as they sow the seeds for their
own destruction. It is sad, My child, that I should wander and
see such a dimness of Faith in the hearts of Our dedicated. (vol
I page 278)
Why do the evil prosper, My child, you ask. Why are all who follow
My Son, allowed to be set upon like sheep among wolves? Know that
by this trial will many souls be gathered. There are many good
shepherds throughout the world, My child. By their fruits will
you recognize them. (vol I page 279)
DECEMBER 6, 1974 - Shepherds, return to your rule! Shall
you stand before Me and say that your teaching has been true in
My sight! I repeat. I shall gather you and spit you into the abyss!
No rank shall be left! No excuse for the desecration and destruction
of those entrusted into your care will be accepted! You are receiving
from My Mother a warning, one of the final warnings being given
to mankind. You will act upon it N-O-W! (vol I page 306)
DECEMBER 24, 1974 - Shepherds, return to your rule! Shall
you stand before Me and say that your teaching has been true in
My sight! I repeat! I shall gather you and spit you into the abyss!
No rank shall be left! No excuse for the desecration and destruction
of those entrusted into your care will be accepted! You are receiving
from My Mother a warning, one of the final warnings being given
to mankind. You will act upon it N-O-W! (vol I page 312)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - We need discipline, disciplines shepherd.
We need shepherds who persevere and are fearless for the Faith.
Pray, My children, that the light enters into the hearts of many
of Our shepherds. (vol I page 322)
FEBRUARY 1, 1975 - The Foundation of My Son's House has
always been firm. You shall not use your rank in My Son's House
to whittle away at the walls. You are going like rodents burrowing
into the Foundation of My Son's House! I do not need to name you
with names, My children. You who wear the Red Hats and the Purple
Hats, you know who I speak to! When are you going to cast aside
the darkness from your hearts! Restore My Son's House to its proper
Foundation, or else, you will receive the sword! Many mitres are
falling into hell! ..........Veronica sees in vision: Oh! Oh,
my goodness! Our Lady is pointing over and I see bishops! I know
they're bishops. I don't know their rank but I can tell from their
hats they're bishops. There are two now. They are standing, and
as I watch everything is turning black. All the color is going
from their mitres and their robes that were golden and purple,
they're now black! Black! An oh, now as I watch, I see this hole
opening wide. And now, they're going and looking down and plunging
into the hole........Our Lady: The abyss, My child. You have reason
to be upset, My child. It is not them alone that enter..............Veronica:
And I am now looking over. Our Lady is pointing and it's just
like, one by one and two by two and three by three.........I see
a whole row full of people following and they're entering where
these bishops were standing and as they enter they also turn black
in color, very dark, just like they're destroyed in darkness.
Just like the very darkness is enveloping them and destroying
their bodies! Our Lady is pointing over.
Not their bodies, their human bodies, My child, their eternal
souls! Damned forever to the abyss! Many mitres are now leading
their sheep into the abyss!............Pray, My child, pray much,
for the greatest attacks of satan now are upon your hierarchy.
Misdirection, delusion, misleading! Oh, My child, I am truly the
Mother of great sorrows! (vol I page 330)
FEBRUARY 10, 1975 - Those whom We have chosen to be your
leaders, We look upon them and find them lacking! They will heed
this warning, for rank shall be no guarantee of the crown in the
Kingdom. A complete and fast reversal of man's ways must be made
now, and I say: N-O-W! For your future shall be now! (vol I page
337)
MARCH 18, 1975 - Pastors! Shepherds of Our flock, have
you not the courage to stand up for the Light? Do you fear mankind?
No man shall save you from your eternal reward, if you receive
the recompense of your abominations! You shall be cast into the
abyss, counted among the least! You have been given a Divine Vocation!
You scandalize those who have been entrusted to you! Awaken now
from your blindness! Bishops, the salt! What have you done to
your vocation? You have wrought scandal, destruction of souls!
(vol I page 338)
My children, if I was to give you an overall picture of your present
world and those who have been given the power over you and your
souls, you would find that many mitres have faces of goats! Yes,
My child, goats. (vol I page 340)
MARCH 22, 1975 - We ask, the Eternal Father speaks and
demands, that all bishops in the Houses of God throughout your
world must turn back to prayer! They must turn back from the road
they have chosen, a road filled with error, corruption and sin!
Man will not make changes in the House of God to please the basic
carnal nature of mankind! But man in the House of God, the Leaders,
the Clergy, chosen by the Eternal Father, shall turn man from
his path of destruction and bring him into the House of God! This
he will not accomplish by lowering the rule or standards. Man
must change his ways and follow the ways of God. (vol I page 347)
A delusion has been set into the hearts of the clergy by satan.
They must pray more, and you must pray more for them, My children............Yes,
My child, it is sad but a fact that many Mitres will fall into
hell. A soul is not judged by rank but only by merit, My child.
.............You must in the time given to you make a complete
reversal of your ways that offend the Father much. You do this
not for mankind in his earthly life but for the salvation of souls.
Awaken from your slumber, leaders! You have fallen asleep. You
have been lulled into darkness because you have given yourselves
to the pleasures of the flesh! As leaders of Our sheep, My clergy,
do not be misled by your modernist and your humanist! You are
being led into the darkness!! A deep darkness covers your world!
You will know the hand of the Father upon you! (vol I page 348)
MARCH 29, 1975 - We have asked Our clergy, to return to
their lives of prayer! They will gain nothing by joining the world,
nothing but the destruction of souls and misleading Our sheep!
Awaken from your slumber, shepherds! Do not cast aside, in your
pride, the warnings from Heaven! You too, will stand in judgment!
(vol I page 353)
APRIL 5, 1975 - I have wandered throughout the world bringing
this Message from Heaven to mankind. The Father has counted and
found you lacking. Know that a great Warning will be sent upon
mankind. All who remain in the light of grace will have no fear.
They will pass through this great Warning without suffering. I
cannot promise you that none will die in this great Warning, My
child, for there will be death. Prepare now for this is just a
small measure, My children, of what you will have soon. ............Yes,
My child, many mitres will fall into hell because too few pray
for them. Their graces must also be merited, My child. Man signs
his destiny with his own free will. (vol I page 355)
MAY 17, 1975 - My children, go to your pastors, the shepherds
of Our flock, tell them that your Mother from Heaven cries tears.
It truly rains teardrops from Heaven! Tell them, My children,
be messengers of the Eternal Father, that a great Warning will
soon come upon mankind, and if mankind does not change, there
will be death, death prevailing upon your earth. Many shall die
in the great flame of the Ball of Redemption, My child. (vol I
page 360)
When you come before Me, the Eternal Father, and the Spirit, you
will be judged. If you are found lukewarm, neither hot not cold,
I will vomit you from My Mouth and cast you into the fires of
eternal damnation! You cannot play the middle road, My pastors!
You must not change, you must not trade your soul and bargain
for your world. No man can have both, the world and the spirit....................When
the world and My churches throughout your world are united, know
that the end is at hand! The Eternal Father will not have the
world come into His House for the flesh and the devil have nothing
in common with the spirit. Take yourselves away from this error
of damnation, desecration, abominations! You who know you are
following the path to perdition, come out of your darkness now!
I do not have to give your names in trust to Our messengers throughout
the world. In charity, I do not expose you before the nations.
However, the time will come when you will expose yourselves before
the nations. (vol I page 366)
JULY 15, 1975 - Leaders in the Houses of God, throughout
your world, you must teach honorably! You must teach in faith
with firm foundation! Tradition must not be separated from the
truth! Man shall not build upon earth a church of man! The foundation
is Jesus, the Christ in the Father and in the Spirit! (vol I page
382)
AUGUST 5, 1975 - Satan now has entered into many Houses
of My Son, churches, throughout the world. A pastor must remain
true to his Faith. If he gives himself to the world, he will find
it difficult to return to the narrow path that leads to the Eternal
Kingdom of God the Father. (vol I page 393)
AUGUST 14, 1975 - My pastors, those who have dedicated
themselves as teachers of the young souls, you are scattering
the flock! Turn now from your worldliness and your teachings of
materialism. What have you gained for yourselves or those, who
you have taken a vow to protect and guide to the Eternal Kingdom
of the Father? You are leading them down, by your example, the
road to perdition!! (vol I page 397)
Pastors of the world, those given to guide the sheep to Heaven,
shall you stand before My Son and say that your teaching has been
pure in His sight? He will cast you into the eternal fires of
damnation! You, who have forgotten your role as pastor! ...........You,
who have turned away from your guide, your angel, your guardians,
your true pastors; you who have abandoned yourselves to the world,
given vent to all pleasures of the flesh; you, who have turned
from your God and set upon the world all manner of abominations
in the hearts of mankind, and even in the churches of the world.
You shall stand in judgment before the Eternal Father! And, you
shall reap what you have sown. (vol I page 398)
AUGUST 21, 1975 - The knowledge of the supernatural must
be given to the children. Pastors in My Son's House, are you bringing
this knowledge to the children? Have you chosen to scatter the
sheep? Whatever will become of them? You must exercise discipline
and good firm example for the flock...................Stand up
pastors in the Houses of My Son and give firm discipline by example
and words chosen from the Book of Love and Life, the Bible. Remember
all that can save a soul must be given to mankind. Good words
kept in a closed mouth is like placing meat on a dead man's grave!
What good is it to keep this knowledge to yourself. For would
it not be, My children, selfishness not to share the way with
the sheep. Awaken from your slumber, pastors! There is not much
time left! .................You will have to account to My Son
for your errors, and for your arrogance; and for your sloth! Awaken
My pastors in My Son's Houses! You are misleading the sheep; Oh!
Woe! Oh, woe! The Red Hats have fallen and the Purple Hats are
being misled! Oh, woe, woe, woe to the inhabitants of the earth!
(vol I page 403)
As in the houses of My children, so the leaders must be of good
spirit in the Houses of My Son, the Churches of the world. The
leadership is examined by the Eternal Father and found lacking.
I repeat Myself: Pastors awaken from your slumber! You must not
offend your God any longer for He is already too much offended.........Pastors,
and mitres will also fall into hell. A human soul is but a human
soul and will pass into judgment. No soul will cross the veil
without facing this judgment by the Eternal Father...........Do
not succumb, My pastors, to the fallacy that all will be forgiven.
For that is asking too much at this time! When a man sins, it
is a sorrow to the Merciful Heart of the Eternal Father. But when
he leads another into sin, it is an abomination in the eyes of
the Eternal Father. Therefore, pastors, clothe yourselves in good
works, modesty, chastity, piety; holiness must be returned to
the Churches of the world. (vol I page 404)
Awaken! You are blind to the Truth My pastors! Are you to follow
the crowd of the siren, the serpent, or are you going to listen
to the words of Truth and the Light? You are following like sheep
to the slaughter! Come out of your darkness of spirit. Through
the Merciful Heart of the Eternal Father, you are being warned.
Search your heart, allow the Light to come in. For the Light is
dim in the hearts of many. (vol I page 405)
OCTOBER 2, 1975 - You must, My sister, hasten to give out
the Message. All peoples of earth must remain true to Pope Paul
VI, faithful and true in his present duress. He suffers much from
those about him who are deceivers. Satan has entered, My sisters
and brothers, into the highest ranks of the hierarchy. Therefore,
you will recognize the faces of evil; by their fruits will they
be known. (vol I page 425)
OCTOBER 6, 1975 - The time will come when there must be
a separation of the sheep and the goats. There will be bishop
against bishop; and cardinal against cardinal and satan shall
set himself in their midst. There is in the Eternal City of Rome,
My children, a great delusion. The light has not passed that way.
Error upon error is coming forth. ............Pastors, upon earth,
why have you scattered your sheep? Why do you follow the call
of the serpent? Why have you taken My Son's House, Church, and
destroyed the knowledge of their God? You are building for yourselves
a Church that will be one of man and not of your God. Stone upon
stone, you build using all of the treasures of your world to build
it, but they will crumble; each stone shall fall, none will be
left unturned in the Chastisement. Then, what will you have gained
for your sins? (vol I page 428)
Those who have the highest places in My Son's Church are now using
their rank to destroy the truth! You cannot build on the carnal
nature of mankind; the fallen nature of mankind!! .........The
major downfall in the House of God lies with the fact, My children,
that the pastors preach worldly living with world treasures, never
counting the merits needed to enter the Kingdom of God the Father.
These merits are not gained by your gathering of world treasures!
They come from your heart! These hearts of Our pastors have been
hardened! Their ears are clogged, My child! They do not listen!
Their eyes are blinded not seeing the miracles We send to open
them!!................Pastors, do you reject the Message from
Heaven because you fear it, or do you prefer to ignore it because
it will expose your error? P-r-i-d-e, false pride, My children,
is the downfall of many! Cast aside this worldly pride! You have
only One to face when you come over the veil. It is the judgment
of the Eternal Father....................You owe, My children,
no allegiance to man who offends the Eternal Father. The Commandments
given by the Eternal Father must be followed. ( vol I page 429)
My child, you must hasten to make it known to the world that satan
has employed many agents to enter into the bodies of those in
the highest places of My Son's Church. They will deceive with
cunning; they will rationalize sin until satan has his great count
of souls! Too late, they will turn back and cry, but their cries
for mercy will come too late to save them! Many Mitres shall fall
into hell!! (vol I page 429,430)
Pastors in the House of God, We have been watching and finding
you wanting. How many warnings shall you receive as you conduct
yourselves and your sheep like pagans in the House of Prayer?
You are setting up moneychangers in My House and I shall cleanse
them again! No man shall defile the House of God! No man shall
use this House for self gain! All hat is rotten shall fall! (vol
I page 431)
NOVEMBER 1, 1975 - You must, My child, bring forth the
truth to mankind, of the existence of hell. We watch an evil influence
entering upon your children. This influence, of diabolical nature,
is being brought to them by teachers who have been ordained to
promote the truth and the salvation of souls. All who have fallen
into the web of satan and the evil doers of the Holy City of Rome
shall be held accountable, and shall not escape eternal damnation
in the fires of hell, for their destruction of the young souls
and those who have been given to their care. .........In your
misguided foolish way of finding the fight, My pastors, you have
given yourselves to delusion. Abominations are being committed
now in My Son's Houses, churches, throughout the world. This brings
much sorrow to the people of Heaven. This brings much sorrow to
the Eternal Father and, in turn, this will bring much sorrow to
the hearts of those who will struggle to retain the truth. Faith
and tradition shall not be separated. Novelty is the creation
of satan. (vol I page 432)
Children of the world, you have been given time to make amends
for the sins and abominations committed by both clergy and lay
peoples in the Houses of God throughout your world. You will no
longer defile the High Host of Heaven. The portals must be cleansed
of all sins and abominations. You must excommunicate, as clergy,
high clergy in Rome, all who enter into a compromising agreement
with the agents of satan, who seek to control mankind and the
world without their God. You shall not compromise your Faith,
you will not save souls by compromise. You must now start to clean
your House, for if you do not listen to this direction, you shall
be cast out of the portals by the Son of God. (vol I page 433,434)
My Mother has now traveled throughout your world with the Message
from Heaven. You will all heed this Message and act upon it, or
you shall be forced back onto the road to the Kingdom. Those who
return will return because they have a measure of light still
with them. Others, sadly, will hear but not recognize the voice
from Heaven, so deep into darkness of spirit have they traveled.
We continue the time of trial, going forward with penance upon
your world. The measures of chastisement from the Eternal Father
is given to compensate for the abominations being committed in
the House of God; in the Houses of God throughout your world.
Heresy, O mournful heresy! Whatever shall become of you?...........Pastors
you must gather the sheep and not scatter them. You are misleading
Our sheep. Shall you come before Me, and say that your teaching
has been pure in My sight? Noo! I see into your heart daily. I
find you wanting, for you are destroying many souls by your teachings............You
have succumbed to the weakness of the flesh. You have opened the
doors, allowing all manner of evil to enter. You gather to your
bosom those who have cast aside the Faith. What do you expect
to gain with your actions? You chip away and you burrow like rats
into the structure, the foundation of My Houses throughout the
world. You have set your seats up before the Sacrificial Altar!
You! You, Pharisees, in My House! I will descend upon you and
I shall scatter you and send you from My temples.
I give you fair warning; your time is growing short. You who have
sold My House to a synagogue of satan, turn back from your path.
You shall not succeed, for you shall not set the gates of hell
in front of My Church, for they shall not prevail against My Church.
Satan shall gather those who have given their souls to him. For
pieces of silver, many have sold their souls to get to the head.
For what? Damnation! You say now there is no hell! Where do you
think Lucifer was cast? And those who followed him? He was cast
from the Kingdom of the Eternal Father, as you too shall be cast
from the Kingdom. And where did he go? Deep into earth, setting
up a kingdom; gathering the straying sheep by errors, deception,
heresy, untruth, delusion!............Nooo! You shall not mislead
My sheep; you shall not open My doors and greet a separated brethren
with their errors and their corruption. You must convert but you
shall not convert by compromising the Faith.
Woe! Woe! Woe to the inhabitants of the earth! Your times are
such as have never been seen in the times of mankind. You sin
in a manner far more foul than in the times of Sodom and Gomorrah.
And whatever shall become of you as in the times of the flood!
The world was cleansed; you shall receive a baptism of fire. Can
I come to you? May I enter your hearts with words of cheer when
My Heart is torn with grief?..............The abominations committed
in My House far exceed the measures of sacrifice mankind does
now. Clergy, in My Houses, where are your straying sheep? Can
you not reprimand the evil doer? Shall you consort with satan,
allowing all manner of foul conduct and abominations in My House?
Cleanse your House now, pastor, for you are being judged. The
Eternal Father looks into your heart; your time grows short. All
that is rotten will fall! Any Church or House in darkness wears
a band of death about it; a House in darkness will close its doors.
If you continue, O Pastors and those who rule the Eternal City
in Rome, there will be no other recourse but to reduce you to
ashes and build anew. How many souls shall be lost to the Kingdom
because of your misconduct? You are following new demons loosed
from the abyss with all manners of new religion. You have been
given a truth, you have been established in Tradition and Faith.
Why do you get itching ears and seek novelty for the destruction
of your souls and those in your care? Awaken, My Pastors; you
have fallen asleep. Awaken now, before it is too late! You will
not bring in the doctrines of demons into My House and among My
sheep. Many Mitres shall fall into hell; rank is not a signification
of the soul..............I enter the hearts of the pure and those
who ask, and what are you doing to My Body? You are desecrating
the temples of the Holy Spirit; you are desecrating the Church
of your God. Will you listen now and restore My House, or shall
you be forced to restore it? This, the answer, My pastors, lies
with you now. (vol I page 436)
The warnings from Heaven have reached far and wide throughout
your earth. Shall your pride and arrogance come before the salvation
of souls? Open your ears; reach out for the truth before it is
too late! You have been deluded! You shall not follow the doctrines
of devils! (vol I page 436,437)
You shall not follow a man who leads you on a wide road away from
truth and your Faith and into the abyss. No man is above the Eternal
Father and no man shall commit his eternal soul into the care
of another who has the rank in obedience to destroy this soul.
Nooo! No man is a keeper for another soul; each individual shall
stand before the Eternal Father and give an account on his own.
The destroyer of souls shall not be there to support him. He had
already done his work for satan. Awaken now each individual soul,
man, woman, and child of age of reason. You must think for yourself
in the light; you must seek the truth and not give yourself to
the doctrines and creations of demons. (vol I page 437)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975 - The time of times and the day approaches
when mankind shall be fraught and separated. The sheep and the
goats shall stand apart. I have given a warning in general to
mankind. I have sent My voice throughout your world summoning
before Me those in command of My sheep. Shepherds that have gone
astray! Shepherds that have set themselves above the Eternal Father!
Shepherds that have scattered Our flock! (vol I page 440)
What have you gained by your action? Shepherd of darkness! You,
who deceive and have brought confusion into the hearts of your
sheep. Shall you go before the Eternal Father and say that you
teaching has been pure in His Sight? No-o! I say this unto you:
You shall be cast aside and join those who have received a just
recompense for their deception!...........The gates of H-E-L-L
are opened W-I-D-E!! The pressures of hell force themselves upon
the world. They have reached the walls of My Churches! But: Woe
to the man who will sell out his Faith!! .............I say unto
you: Your time grows short! Turn back now from your deception.............A
great delusion has been set upon mankind so that those who have
given themselves to satan will believe these errors and go fast
to their reward!..........You shall not compromise your Faith!
..........You shall not unite with those who seek to destroy your
Faith!...........You shall not gather the straying sheep by joining
them in their errors!.............Heresy! O mournful heresy! Whatever
shall become of you!!!!! (vol I page 441)
I shall come soon to cleanse My Temples, the Churches. I shall
cast you who have given yourselves and set upon My Church a stigma
of fallen hierarchy! Awaken from your slumber! Recognize the faces
of evil about you, My pastors. Shall you please man, or shall
you follow the rule of your God? No man shall save you from judgment!
No man shall give you your reward, but satan has set on earth
men who shall claim you for satan! (vol I page 441)
Peter and his descendants shall rule! There shall not be set up
a governing body of hierarchy! The ruler is your Pope, Pope Paul
VI, who is very ill and kept an invalid! I have asked you, My
child, to warn the three bishops of Rome that We are watching
their actions! None escape the Eternal Father and they shall receive
a just judgment from Him! (vol I page 439)
DECEMBER 6, 1975 - You must not take the knowledge of hell
from the minds of the children and your sheep, pastors. There
is a hell, the abyss of satan, and there is a place of purging.
All must be purified through trial, if necessary, before they
can enter the Eternal Kingdom. Heaven was made, My children, for
all, but all do not enter. The faith must be accepted. Many shall
enter but in this present trial and the trials and chastisements
which will soon come upon you, only a few will be saved. (vol
I page 451)
DECEMBER 24, 1975 - You have opened your doors to all manner
of evil spirits! Holiness and piety; man of God, you must wear
your garment of purity, dedication, and piety. What manner of
foul deeds do you perform for the destruction of your sheep? For
what? Material gain and pride and arrogance! You shall be cast
into the abyss! Rank shall give you no advantage when you come
over the veil. (vol I page 454)
You must enter, My Pastors, Michael into your Houses, your Churches.
It is urgent! He is the guardian of your Faith. You must re-enter
him now into your churches. Pray a constant vigilance of prayer,
My pastors! You do not know what is fast approaching upon you!............Pastors,
leaders of Our sheep, My Son begs you to listen now while there
is time! The Red Hats have fallen! The Purple Hats are being misled.
Take the blindness from your hearts! You shall not be obedient
to sin and heresy, My children. Shall you honor man and dishonor
your God? Woe, I say unto you, My children, the day will come
when you shall stand to be judged, and shall man come forward
and give you the grace to enter into the Eternal Kingdom of the
Father in Heaven. Nooo! You shall be claimed by the prince of
darkness and cast into the pit! The eternal fires of damnation
shall claim all who do not repent of their sin now! Many shall
die in the great flame of the Ball of Redemption!
Rome, the Eternal City, what manner of Faith do you give yourself?
Tears and blood, sorrow, no joy, but darkness, darkness of the
spirit! The forces, the red forces, My children, shall spread
throughout Rome! Can you not pray and do penance to hold back
the darkness? Pastors, you must now do great penance! Get down
on your knees! Humility, My pastors, holiness and piety! Tradition!
What are you building among yourselves but a church of man, eliminating
My Son and the light! Bishops, awaken from your slumber! I repeat,
My children, My bishops, shall you be obedient to sin? Shall you
unite and destroy your Faith with the ultimate destruction of
soul? My Son gave you your Faith. He gave you the course, a simple
plan to follow. He gave you your first leaders. They wrote down
the plan from Heaven into your Bible! Every man seeks novelty,
interpreting for his own satisfaction! All manner of delusion
and complication, novelty! For what? For the ultimate destruction
of your Faith? Sheep running and scattering, Churches closing
their doors! Why? Because you have replaced the light with darkness.
(vol I page 455)
DECEMBER 27, 1975 - In the Eternal City of Rome, the light
is dim. There is a conspiracy of evil. Holiness must return to
the man who represents himself in My Name. In the Eternal City
of Rome, My Pastors, you have opened your doors to all manner
of heretics and separated brethren who shall not join you for
the betterment of My Church, but to destroy and confuse and bring
together a new religion of man, one based on humanism and modernism
and satanism! (vol I page 461)
I, your God, demand that you cleanse yourselves now! We extol
to you a time to bring this about! You are not hidden in your
evil ways from Our eyes! Do you think you shall escape a just
punishment! Nooo! Amen, I say to you, no rank shall make you escape
the fires! You who call yourselves My Pastors and have sold your
souls to get to the head! You who have taken the young to destroy
their souls with all manner of novelty and innovations in My Mother!
I did not ask you for change! I did not ask you to discard the
words of your first teachers, the Apostles! In your arrogance,
you laugh and are derisive of their teachings! You set yourself
up another church not My House. I shall not represent Myself in
Body and Spirit in your new house! Shall I separate My Pastors
and cause more confusion! Nooo! The Eternal Father deems to cleanse
you! There shall not be another separation. (vol I page 461,462)
You shall not find excuses and rationalize sin! Nooo! There shall
be no rationalization of sin, which has now proceeded to make
sin a way of life in your country and throughout your world. Pastors,
take heed, hasten, hearken and listen for I shall not warn you
again. ..........Awaken, pastors, from your slumber! Shall you
be obedient to heretics? Shall you please man and reject your
God? The decision is yours. In the Merciful Providence of the
Eternal Father, you have been given the time to mend your ways.
In the past many warnings have been given to you but have not
been recognized as coming from the Eternal Father. (vol I page
462)
DECEMBER 31, 1975 - The Eternal City of Rome must now take
action by those in rule, the cardinals and the bishops, to restore
this city to the light. Those who seek to build a church of man
must be removed by the power of excommunication given to those
who rule or are representatives in My Houses, Churches, upon your
earth. (vol I page 463)
You shall not gather your flock, My pastors, by compromising your
Faith. You shall not gather the flock for the Eternal Father in
Heaven by giving yourself to the world, by adopting humanism and
modernism as your guide. ............It is a simple lesson of
Faith that you must give to the children and to all in your care.
As pastors you shall stand before Me and shall you say to Me that
your teaching has been pure in My sight? Amen: I say unto you:
I shall cast you from Me and send you into the abyss. As you sow,
so shall you reap. (vol I page 463)
Your world now has plunged itself into deep darkness of spirit.
Come out of that darkness, My pastors! You have been given many
warnings, and they have fallen upon deafened ears! How many warnings
do you think you shall receive from Heaven? You are misleading
Our sheep! The Red Hats shall stand before Me, and shall you say
to Me that your teaching has been pure in My sight? Away from
Me, I shall cast you into the abyss! Vipers, join the brood of
vipers, soul-destroyers! ............No man shall stand before
Me and have on his count the loss of souls entrusted to him! No
man shall excuse himself with rules and obedience, with rule set
forth by satan! You have been given the true knowledge! You will
not give yourselves to the world! You will not take My Church
and give it to the world of satan, turning it from a place of
sanctity and refuge to a meeting place of all foul practices,
lacking respect and honor! You take off your collar and expose
your true nature! You are of carnal desires! As such, you shall
not enter the Kingdom of Heaven.............Pray, My children,
a constant vigilance of prayer for your priests, cardinals, bishops,
your clergy, for a great test, a delusion has been set amongst
them, to test their valor, to test holiness, to test their fidelity
to My Son's Church! Oh sorrow of sorrows from your Mother's heart,
that as We now go throughout your world, can We say that there
are one hundred true priests left in My Son's House? Shall He
return and find even a flicker of Faith left among His sheep?
The shepherds don't carry the light. (vol I page 466)
FEBRUARY 10, 1976 - I understand, My child, your anguish
as you watch the separation of Our pastors from their church.
It is not the wish of the Eternal Father that you flee from the
battle, My pastors. You must remain! You shall not desert the
bark of Peter!...The Eternal City of Rome, My children, is undergoing
a great trial. It is a sad fact that the doors were opened and
all manners of people that do not possess the light entered; heretics
and separated brethren who have come not to join, but to confuse,
confound, and rend asunder the Church of My Son............You,
My child, will receive your answer in secret. At this time it
would not be of gain to expose this malice, this corruption that
has entered upon the hearts of some in the highest places.........The
present evolvement of evil, corruption, and misleading of the
sheep did not come overnight, My child. It is a well-planned conspiracy...........As
in the time of My Son upon earth, there are those who do not recognize
the Eternal Father. Their father is the father of all liars, satan.
(vol I page 472)
MARCH 18, 1976 - How many earth-years have I come down
from Heaven to reach you with these words of warning and direction?
I have pleaded with the pastors within My Son's Church to return
to their tradition. I have pleaded for recognition of fact and
truth and the destruction that is now being perpetrated by a conspiracy
of the Red Hats in My Son's Church. O My children, the Red Hat
has fallen and the Purple Hat is being misled! (vol I page 477)
The sin of pride and the arrogance of many in My House, Church,
have set a pattern of soul destruction among the young. I have
asked that all who have been given the glory from the Eternal
Father to follow My road as pastors, shepherds of Our sheep; there
is much lacking in their direction. I do not have to give a listing
by name, the plan of the Eternal Father shall reach those who
permit and commit evil in their vocations................Heresy
abounds in My House. All manners of aberrations and impurities
are being tolerated by My Pastors. I say unto you that you must
now clean your House! No man who has been chosen from among the
multitudes to be a representative from Heaven shall use his rank,
his vocation to gain worldly treasures and fall into the pattern
of worldly living to the sorrow of those souls entrusted to him.
You must awaken from your slumber. I repeat: Cleanse My House
now, or I shall set a Chastisement upon you! (vol I page 478)
APRIL 10, 1976 - There are, within the Eternal City of Rome now, red cardinals. There are, within the Eternal City of Rome, those who promote heresy. And there is, in the Eternal City of Rome a murderer...............I must, as your Mother, give you warning, O you who wear the Red Hats and the Purple Hats in My Son's Church, that you have allowed yourselves to be counted with the goats. For the love of power and being misled by humanism and modernism within your lifetime and your rule. O you who have become of little faith, wherever shall your road lead you but to damnation! But sorrow upon sorrow, the road you travel is taking many of those entrusted in your care, you are taking them with you to damnation.............Do not leave My Son's Church though, My children, because they have taken this language from among you. You must wait and persevere and weep with My Son for this defilement by man. It is a great sorrow to the Eternal Father that this folly has been perpetrated by the men who wear the Red Hats and the Purple Hats within My Son's Church. O cardinals and bishops, shall you stand before My Son and say to Him in judgment that your teaching has been pure in His sight? (vol I page 479)
Because mankind has fallen into darkness of spirit and allowed
to be blinded by the Father, he no longer recognizes sin until
sin has become a way of life. I say unto you cardinals, Red Hats
in My Son's Church; you are extending in one hand, your left hand,
a hand of friendship, and you shall receive the shiv. (vol I page
479,480)
Satan has been given much power. Luciel, cast out of Heaven onto
earth, is doing great battle now with Our children. He knows that
his time is growing short. His plan, My children, and listen well,
is to capture the ruling body within My Son's Church...........You
must not, O pastors, you must not compromise your faith; do not
be misled. O pastors, you have forgotten your teachings. You must
renew in a manner that is not new. You must go back, I say, go
back and start anew with Tradition! You cannot separate Tradition,
for you held the truth. You were given the grace, the greatest
of gifts to mankind, to be born into or come into by conversion,
My Son's Church. And now you go about, O you of little faith,
to chip away and chop at the walls until it crumbles. But you
shall not remove the foundation, for the foundation is My Son.
You are re crucifying Him in His own House. ...........O shameful
manifestation of sin among Our hierarchy! You are not hidden from
the eyes of the Eternal Father. Your sins are counted. You shall
be judged. The Eternal Father has looked into the heart of Our
clergy and found, sadly, that they are wanting. (vol I page 480)
The sins of omission of many parents and the sins of omission
being committed by Our clergy have not gone by unnoticed by the
Eternal Father. Awaken from your slumber, Our clergy, for We have
looked upon you and found you wanting. Look into your heart, examine
your conscience well. The light has been given to you, and you
have permitted it to darken...............I repeat: Rank has no
place with the spirit. Many mitres are now on the road to hell.
Reject your faith for worldly gain and power and you reject your
God. If you surrender My Church to the enemies of your God, you
surrender your soul to satan and eternal damnation. (vol I page
481)
APRIL 17, 1976 - The bear is the Union of the Soviet Socialist
Republic, U.S.S.R. We have now, My children, sadly, many sickle-bears
in Rome. A sickle bear is one who is an arm of the U.S.S.R.
in Rome. And there are a small number of them, My child, in the
Eternal City of Rome. They have entered upon the high places in
Rome. (vol I page 482)
The clergy who have given themselves over to errors and are misled,
and some, of great determination to destroy My Son's Church, why?
Because they have lost the Faith. Pray, pray much for your clergy,
My children. Without your prayers many mitres shall fall into
hell........Your photograph, My child, shows the priesthood on
the wide road to destruction and damnation. The narrow road to
Heaven is not an easy road, for it requires discipline and sacrifice,
but above all, a steadfast determination to retain the Faith.
As My Mother has told you countless times in the past, there will
be a war. It will be bishop against bishop and cardinal against
cardinal, and all that is rotten shall fall. It is sad but true
that there are some now in the Eternal City who have taken the
Red Hat with dark purposes........You ask, My child, why this
has been allowed? It is in the Eternal Father's plan to separate
the sheep from the goats. The present course of Our Red Hats and
Our Purple Hats lead but to one conclusion, that many mitres shall
fall into hell...............You who have been given the grace,
a special calling from the Eternal Father, you who betray Me in
My own House, I say to you now: Turn back and make amends; do
penance; pray a constant vigilance. You must return discipline
to your vocation.................The conspiracy of evil, like
an octopus, the arms reach out to destroy My Church. But I say
unto you: I am the Foundation! The walls are shaking. There are
many Judas's in My House!....................I have set the angel
Exterminatus upon you. All who are of well spirit shall go through
these trials knowing the reason for this test. (vol I page 484)
MAY 15, 1976 - My Son has been sorrowed; He has been wounded
anew by the conduct of those He has chosen to represent Him in
His Church upon your earth. O My children, the abominations cry
out for punishment from Heaven.............Will you not, pastors,
take the blindness from your hearts and look upon the road which
you have set yourselves on with your arrogance and pride and your
searching for worldly knowledge and your searching for worldly
gain? What will it do you when you stand before My Son and He
will ask account of your mission? Will you stand before Him and
say that your mission was completed with purity and the recovery
of souls? No! Many of you now have set yourselves upon the road
to perdition and you are taking many others with you.............What
can you, do now to recover? It is simple, My children; turn back
and start over with the foundation given to you. You must bring
respect back to your priesthood. You must bring respect back to
your Holy Father, Pope Paul VI. I have warned you of all the manner
of abomination, error and delusions that have been set upon your.
Listen, and act upon My warnings to you!
The Eternal Father in Heaven shall have the final command over
mankind. He allows you to go on your way scattering the sheep,
O pastors, but one day the hand of God shall descend upon mankind.
............You must not involve yourselves, My pastors, with
the political machines of your world. It is a satanic involvement.
I do not have to repeat by name those who have fallen into the
web of satan and the world machine. This machine, My children,
in simple language, will promote, without prayers and without
enough sacrifice to give balm to the heart of the Eternal Father
for the abominations being committed, this machine shall set itself
to enslave the world's souls. (vol I page 486)
My Mother repeats what is in My heart to My pastors. For you who were given great grace, much has been expected of you. I have looked into your hearts, My pastors, and I have found you wanting. Measure for measure shall you receive the just recompense of your actions. You, as pastors of My sheep, and I must now give you a final warning, in the time allowed now, you must do all in your power to restore My House.................Because of your arrogance, because of your greed, your pride, you have succumbed along with your sheep to all of the evils of the flesh. Many souls have gone into hell because they pursued all the treasures of your earth and did not look upward and bring their treasures to the Kingdom of the Eternal Father. I repeat to you: What does it matter if you gain the whole world and have suffered the loss of your immortal soul? ........
Shall you, as pastors, stand before Me and say that your teaching
has been pure in My sight? No, I say to you! I will cast you out,
send you down into the pit where you belong, for you have degraded
your vocation! (vol I page 487)
You have destroyed many souls in your search for power, your lust,
your arrogance, your pride! You have torn My Church asunder! Shall
you restore it brick for brick? Can you regain the souls that
you have scattered and allowed to fall under the teachings of
false teachers?................You have been warned in the past
that you must not follow the ways of the world. You were, as pastors,
to live in the world, but not be out of it! All that is rotten
will fall.......................No, My pastors, I shall not destroy
earth. It will be a gradual cleansing. It will be the forces of
the world. Do you think, as pastors, that I left a heritage to
you of words that were not true? You take My Book, the Bible,
you tear it and rebuild it with the work of satan! Restore My
Church, or I shall come and I shall chase you of light against
the forces of darkness. The sheep shall be separated from the
goats. The ultimate cleansing shall be given to mankind. It will
be a celestial punishment.
Recognize the signs of your times. Come out of your darkness. You are asleep, My pastors! I have sent many warnings to mankind. I have allowed satan his time to ravage the earth, as it is a measure of separation of the sheep from the goats. You who have given yourselves to satan, you plunge faster into the pit! ............Pastors, shall you count the time left in months or years? No, I say to you! You will all keep; a constant vigilance of prayer. You will cry out from your pulpits against immodesty and immorality. You will demand that man turn back to his God, for if he rejects Him, he is lost. .......A pastor who scatter